The Memoirs of Sherlock Holms by Sir Arthur Conan Doyle
The Memoirs of Sherlock Holms by Sir Arthur Conan Doyle
The Memoirs of Sherlock Holms by Sir Arthur Conan Doyle
6KHUORFN+ROPV
E\6LU$UWKXU&RQDQ'R\OH
MEMOIRS OF SHERLOCK HOLMES
“I am afraid, Watson, that I shall have to go,” said Holmes, as we sat down
together to our breakfast one morning.
I was not surprised. Indeed, my only wonder was that he had not already been
mixed up in this extraordinary case, which was the one topic of conversation
through the length and breadth of England. For a whole day my companion
had rambled about the room with his chin upon his chest and his brows
knitted, charging and recharging his pipe with the strongest black tobacco, and
absolutely deaf to any of my questions or remarks. Fresh editions of every
paper had been sent up by our news agent, only to be glanced over and tossed
down into a corner. Yet, silent as he was, I knew perfectly well what it was over
which he was brooding. There was but one problem before the public which
could challenge his powers of analysis, and that was the singular disappearance
of the favorite for the Wessex Cup, and the tragic murder of its trainer. When,
therefore, he suddenly announced his intention of setting out for the scene of
the drama it was only what I had both expected and hoped for.
“I should be most happy to go down with you if I should not be in the way,”
said I.
“My dear Watson, you would confer a great favor upon me by coming. And I
think that your time will not be misspent, for there are points about the case
which promise to make it an absolutely unique one. We have, I think, just time
to catch our train at Paddington, and I will go further into the matter upon our
journey. You would oblige me by bringing with you your very excellent field-
glass.”
“Nor have I. But the telegraph posts upon this line are sixty yards apart, and
the calculation is a simple one. I presume that you have looked into this matter
of the murder of John Straker and the disappearance of Silver Blaze?”
“I have seen what the Telegraph and the Chronicle have to say.”
“It is one of those cases where the art of the reasoner should be used rather for
the sifting of details than for the acquiring of fresh evidence. The tragedy has
been so uncommon, so complete and of such personal importance to so many
people, that we are suffering from a plethora of surmise, conjecture, and
hypothesis. The difficulty is to detach the framework of fact—of absolute
undeniable fact—from the embellishments of theorists and reporters. Then,
having established ourselves upon this sound basis, it is our duty to see what
inferences may be drawn and what are the special points upon which the whole
mystery turns. On Tuesday evening I received telegrams from both Colonel
Ross, the owner of the horse, and from Inspector Gregory, who is looking
after the case, inviting my cooperation.”
“At least I have got a grip of the essential facts of the case. I shall enumerate
them to you, for nothing clears up a case so much as stating it to another
person, and I can hardly expect your co-operation if I do not show you the
position from which we start.”
I lay back against the cushions, puffing at my cigar, while Holmes, leaning
forward, with his long, thin forefinger checking off the points upon the palm of
his left hand, gave me a sketch of the events which had led to our journey.
“Silver Blaze,” said he, “is from the Somomy stock, and holds as brilliant a
record as his famous ancestor. He is now in his fifth year, and has brought in
turn each of the prizes of the turf to Colonel Ross, his fortunate owner. Up to
the time of the catastrophe he was the first favorite for the Wessex Cup, the
betting being three to one on him. He has always, however, been a prime
favorite with the racing public, and has never yet disappointed them, so that
even at those odds enormous sums of money have been laid upon him. It is
obvious, therefore, that there were many people who had the strongest interest
in preventing Silver Blaze from being there at the fall of the flag next Tuesday.
“The fact was, of course, appreciated at King’s Pyland, where the Colonel’s
training-stable is situated. Every precaution was taken to guard the favorite.
The trainer, John Straker, is a retired jockey who rode in Colonel Ross’s colors
before he became too heavy for the weighing-chair. He has served the Colonel
for five years as jockey and for seven as trainer, and has always shown himself
to be a zealous and honest servant. Under him were three lads; for the
establishment was a small one, containing only four horses in all. One of these
lads sat up each night in the stable, while the others slept in the loft. All three
bore excellent characters. John Straker, who is a married man, lived in a small
villa about two hundred yards from the stables. He has no children, keeps one
maid-servant, and is comfortably off. The country round is very lonely, but
about half a mile to the north there is a small cluster of villas which have been
built by a Tavistock contractor for the use of invalids and others who may wish
to enjoy the pure Dartmoor air. Tavistock itself lies two miles to the west, while
across the moor, also about two miles distant, is the larger training
establishment of Mapleton, which belongs to Lord Backwater, and is managed
by Silas Brown. In every other direction the moor is a complete wilderness,
inhabited only by a few roaming gypsies. Such was the general situation last
Monday night when the catastrophe occurred.
“On that evening the horses had been exercised and watered as usual, and the
stables were locked up at nine o’clock. Two of the lads walked up to the
trainer’s house, where they had supper in the kitchen, while the third, Ned
Hunter, remained on guard. At a few minutes after nine the maid, Edith Baxter,
carried down to the stables his supper, which consisted of a dish of curried
mutton. She took no liquid, as there was a water-tap in the stables, and it was
the rule that the lad on duty should drink nothing else. The maid carried a
lantern with her, as it was very dark and the path ran across the open moor.
“Edith Baxter was within thirty yards of the stables, when a man appeared out
of the darkness and called to her to stop. As he stepped into the circle of
yellow light thrown by the lantern she saw that he was a person of gentlemanly
bearing, dressed in a gray suit of tweeds, with a cloth cap. He wore gaiters, and
carried a heavy stick with a knob to it. She was most impressed, however, by
the extreme pallor of his face and by the nervousness of his manner. His age,
she thought, would be rather over thirty than under it.
“‘Can you tell me where I am?’ he asked. ‘I had almost made up my mind to
sleep on the moor, when I saw the light of your lantern.’
“She was frightened by the earnestness of his manner, and ran past him to the
window through which she was accustomed to hand the meals. It was already
opened, and Hunter was seated at the small table inside. She had begun to tell
him of what had happened, when the stranger came up again.
“‘It’s business that may put something into your pocket,’ said the other.
‘You’ve two horses in for the Wessex Cup—Silver Blaze and Bayard. Let me
have the straight tip and you won’t be a loser. Is it a fact that at the weights
Bayard could give the other a hundred yards in five furlongs, and that the stable
have put their money on him?’
“‘So, you’re one of those damned touts!’ cried the lad. ‘I’ll show you how we
serve them in King’s Pyland.’ He sprang up and rushed across the stable to
unloose the dog. The girl fled away to the house, but as she ran she looked
back and saw that the stranger was leaning through the window. A minute later,
however, when Hunter rushed out with the hound he was gone, and though he
ran all round the buildings he failed to find any trace of him.”
“One moment,” I asked. “Did the stable-boy, when he ran out with the dog,
leave the door unlocked behind him?”
“Hunter waited until his fellow-grooms had returned, when he sent a message
to the trainer and told him what had occurred. Straker was excited at hearing
the account, although he does not seem to have quite realized its true
significance. It left him, however, vaguely uneasy, and Mrs. Straker, waking at
one in the morning, found that he was dressing. In reply to her inquiries, he
said that he could not sleep on account of his anxiety about the horses, and
that he intended to walk down to the stables to see that all was well. She
begged him to remain at home, as she could hear the rain pattering against the
window, but in spite of her entreaties he pulled on his large mackintosh and left
the house.
“Mrs. Straker awoke at seven in the morning, to find that her husband had not
yet returned. She dressed herself hastily, called the maid, and set off for the
stables. The door was open; inside, huddled together upon a chair, Hunter was
sunk in a state of absolute stupor, the favorite’s stall was empty, and there were
no signs of his trainer.
“The two lads who slept in the chaff-cutting loft above the harness-room were
quickly aroused. They had heard nothing during the night, for they are both
sound sleepers. Hunter was obviously under the influence of some powerful
drug, and as no sense could be got out of him, he was left to sleep it off while
the two lads and the two women ran out in search of the absentees. They still
had hopes that the trainer had for some reason taken out the horse for early
exercise, but on ascending the knoll near the house, from which all the
neighboring moors were visible, they not only could see no signs of the missing
favorite, but they perceived something which warned them that they were in
the presence of a tragedy.
“About a quarter of a mile from the stables John Straker’s overcoat was
flapping from a furze-bush. Immediately beyond there was a bowl-shaped
depression in the moor, and at the bottom of this was found the dead body of
the unfortunate trainer. His head had been shattered by a savage blow from
some heavy weapon, and he was wounded on the thigh, where there was a
long, clean cut, inflicted evidently by some very sharp instrument. It was clear,
however, that Straker had defended himself vigorously against his assailants, for
in his right hand he held a small knife, which was clotted with blood up to the
handle, while in his left he clasped a red and black silk cravat, which was
recognized by the maid as having been worn on the preceding evening by the
stranger who had visited the stables. Hunter, on recovering from his stupor,
was also quite positive as to the ownership of the cravat. He was equally certain
that the same stranger had, while standing at the window, drugged his curried
mutton, and so deprived the stables of their watchman. As to the missing
horse, there were abundant proofs in the mud which lay at the bottom of the
fatal hollow that he had been there at the time of the struggle. But from that
morning he has disappeared, and although a large reward has been offered, and
all the gypsies of Dartmoor are on the alert, no news has come of him. Finally,
an analysis has shown that the remains of his supper left by the stable-lad
contain an appreciable quantity of powdered opium, while the people at the
house partook of the same dish on the same night without any ill effect.
“Those are the main facts of the case, stripped of all surmise, and stated as
baldly as possible. I shall now recapitulate what the police have done in the
matter.
I had listened with the greatest interest to the statement which Holmes, with
characteristic clearness, had laid before me. Though most of the facts were
familiar to me, I had not sufficiently appreciated their relative importance, nor
their connection to each other.
“Is it not possible,” I suggested, “that the incised wound upon Straker may
have been caused by his own knife in the convulsive struggles which follow any
brain injury?”
“It is more than possible; it is probable,” said Holmes. “In that case one of the
main points in favor of the accused disappears.”
“And yet,” said I, “even now I fail to understand what the theory of the police
can be.”
“I am afraid that whatever theory we state has very grave objections to it,”
returned my companion. “The police imagine, I take it, that this Fitzroy
Simpson, having drugged the lad, and having in some way obtained a duplicate
key, opened the stable door and took out the horse, with the intention,
apparently, of kidnapping him altogether. His bridle is missing, so that Simpson
must have put this on. Then, having left the door open behind him, he was
leading the horse away over the moor, when he was either met or overtaken by
the trainer. A row naturally ensued. Simpson beat out the trainer’s brains with
his heavy stick without receiving any injury from the small knife which Straker
used in self-defence, and then the thief either led the horse on to some secret
hiding-place, or else it may have bolted during the struggle, and be now
wandering out on the moors. That is the case as it appears to the police, and
improbable as it is, all other explanations are more improbable still. However, I
shall very quickly test the matter when I am once upon the spot, and until then
I cannot really see how we can get much further than our present position.”
It was evening before we reached the little town of Tavistock, which lies, like
the boss of a shield, in the middle of the huge circle of Dartmoor. Two
gentlemen were awaiting us in the station—the one a tall, fair man with lion-
like hair and beard and curiously penetrating light blue eyes; the other a small,
alert person, very neat and dapper, in a frock-coat and gaiters, with trim little
side-whiskers and an eye-glass. The latter was Colonel Ross, the well-known
sportsman; the other, Inspector Gregory, a man who was rapidly making his
name in the English detective service.
“I am delighted that you have come down, Mr. Holmes,” said the Colonel.
“The Inspector here has done all that could possibly be suggested, but I wish to
leave no stone unturned in trying to avenge poor Straker and in recovering my
horse.”
“I am sorry to say that we have made very little progress,” said the Inspector.
“We have an open carriage outside, and as you would no doubt like to see the
place before the light fails, we might talk it over as we drive.”
A minute later we were all seated in a comfortable landau, and were rattling
through the quaint old Devonshire city. Inspector Gregory was full of his case,
and poured out a stream of remarks, while Holmes threw in an occasional
question or interjection. Colonel Ross leaned back with his arms folded and his
hat tilted over his eyes, while I listened with interest to the dialogue of the two
detectives. Gregory was formulating his theory, which was almost exactly what
Holmes had foretold in the train.
“The net is drawn pretty close round Fitzroy Simpson,” he remarked, “and I
believe myself that he is our man. At the same time I recognize that the
evidence is purely circumstantial, and that some new development may upset
it.”
“We have quite come to the conclusion that he wounded himself in his fall.”
“My friend Dr. Watson made that suggestion to me as we came down. If so, it
would tell against this man Simpson.”
“Undoubtedly. He has neither a knife nor any sign of a wound. The evidence
against him is certainly very strong. He had a great interest in the disappearance
of the favorite. He lies under suspicion of having poisoned the stable-boy, he
was undoubtedly out in the storm, he was armed with a heavy stick, and his
cravat was found in the dead man’s hand. I really think we have enough to go
before a jury.”
Holmes shook his head. “A clever counsel would tear it all to rags,” said he.
“Why should he take the horse out of the stable? If he wished to injure it why
could he not do it there? Has a duplicate key been found in his possession?
What chemist sold him the powdered opium? Above all, where could he, a
stranger to the district, hide a horse, and such a horse as this? What is his own
explanation as to the paper which he wished the maid to give to the stable-
boy?”
“He says that it was a ten-pound note. One was found in his purse. But your
other difficulties are not so formidable as they seem. He is not a stranger to the
district. He has twice lodged at Tavistock in the summer. The opium was
probably brought from London. The key, having served its purpose, would be
hurled away. The horse may be at the bottom of one of the pits or old mines
upon the moor.”
“He acknowledges that it is his, and declares that he had lost it. But a new
element has been introduced into the case which may account for his leading
the horse from the stable.”
“We have found traces which show that a party of gypsies encamped on
Monday night within a mile of the spot where the murder took place. On
Tuesday they were gone. Now, presuming that there was some understanding
between Simpson and these gypsies, might he not have been leading the horse
to them when he was overtaken, and may they not have him now?”
“Yes, and that is a factor which we must certainly not neglect. As Desborough,
their horse, was second in the betting, they had an interest in the disappearance
of the favorite. Silas Brown, the trainer, is known to have had large bets upon
the event, and he was no friend to poor Straker. We have, however, examined
the stables, and there is nothing to connect him with the affair.”
“And nothing to connect this man Simpson with the interests of the Mapleton
stables?”
“Nothing at all.”
Holmes leaned back in the carriage, and the conversation ceased. A few
minutes later our driver pulled up at a neat little red-brick villa with
overhanging eaves which stood by the road. Some distance off, across a
paddock, lay a long gray-tiled out-building. In every other direction the low
curves of the moor, bronze-colored from the fading ferns, stretched away to
the sky-line, broken only by the steeples of Tavistock, and by a cluster of
houses away to the westward which marked the Mapleton stables. We all
sprang out with the exception of Holmes, who continued to lean back with his
eyes fixed upon the sky in front of him, entirely absorbed in his own thoughts.
It was only when I touched his arm that he roused himself with a violent start
and stepped out of the carriage.
“Excuse me,” said he, turning to Colonel Ross, who had looked at him in some
surprise. “I was day-dreaming.” There was a gleam in his eyes and a suppressed
excitement in his manner which convinced me, used as I was to his ways, that
his hand was upon a clue, though I could not imagine where he had found it.
“Perhaps you would prefer at once to go on to the scene of the crime, Mr.
Holmes?” said Gregory.
“I think that I should prefer to stay here a little and go into one or two
questions of detail. Straker was brought back here, I presume?”
“I presume that you made an inventory of what he had in his pockets at the
time of his death, Inspector?”
“I have the things themselves in the sitting-room, if you would care to see
them.”
“I should be very glad.” We all filed into the front room and sat round the
central table while the Inspector unlocked a square tin box and laid a small
heap of things before us. There was a box of vestas, two inches of tallow
candle, an A D P brier-root pipe, a pouch of seal-skin with half an ounce of
long-cut Cavendish, a silver watch with a gold chain, five sovereigns in gold, an
aluminum pencil-case, a few papers, and an ivory-handled knife with a very
delicate, inflexible blade marked Weiss & Co., London.
“I thought so. A very delicate blade devised for very delicate work. A strange
thing for a man to carry with him upon a rough expedition, especially as it
would not shut in his pocket.”
“The tip was guarded by a disk of cork which we found beside his body,” said
the Inspector. “His wife tells us that the knife had lain upon the dressing-table,
and that he had picked it up as he left the room. It was a poor weapon, but
perhaps the best that he could lay his hands on at the moment.”
As we emerged from the sitting-room a woman, who had been waiting in the
passage, took a step forward and laid her hand upon the Inspector’s sleeve. Her
face was haggard and thin and eager, stamped with the print of a recent horror.
“Have you got them? Have you found them?” she panted.
“No, Mrs. Straker. But Mr. Holmes here has come from London to help us,
and we shall do all that is possible.”
“Surely I met you in Plymouth at a garden-party some little time ago, Mrs.
Straker?” said Holmes.
“Dear me! Why, I could have sworn to it. You wore a costume of dove-colored
silk with ostrich-feather trimming.”
“Ah, that quite settles it,” said Holmes. And with an apology he followed the
Inspector outside. A short walk across the moor took us to the hollow in which
the body had been found. At the brink of it was the furze-bush upon which the
coat had been hung.
“In that case the overcoat was not blown against the furze-bush, but placed
there.”
“You fill me with interest, I perceive that the ground has been trampled up a
good deal. No doubt many feet have been here since Monday night.”
“A piece of matting has been laid here at the side, and we have all stood upon
that.”
“Excellent.”
“In this bag I have one of the boots which Straker wore, one of Fitzroy
Simpson’s shoes, and a cast horseshoe of Silver Blaze.”
“My dear Inspector, you surpass yourself!” Holmes took the bag, and,
descending into the hollow, he pushed the matting into a more central position.
Then stretching himself upon his face and leaning his chin upon his hands, he
made a careful study of the trampled mud in front of him. “Hullo!” said he,
suddenly. “What’s this?” It was a wax vesta half burned, which was so coated
with mud that it looked at first like a little chip of wood.
“I cannot think how I came to overlook it,” said the Inspector, with an
expression of annoyance.
“It was invisible, buried in the mud. I only saw it because I was looking for it.”
He took the boots from the bag, and compared the impressions of each of
them with marks upon the ground. Then he clambered up to the rim of the
hollow, and crawled about among the ferns and bushes.
“I am afraid that there are no more tracks,” said the Inspector. “I have
examined the ground very carefully for a hundred yards in each direction.”
The Colonel bowed. “I am very glad to have had your opinion, sir,” said he.
“You will find us at poor Straker’s house when you have finished your walk,
and we can drive together into Tavistock.”
He turned back with the Inspector, while Holmes and I walked slowly across
the moor. The sun was beginning to sink behind the stables of Mapleton, and
the long, sloping plain in front of us was tinged with gold, deepening into rich,
ruddy browns where the faded ferns and brambles caught the evening light. But
the glories of the landscape were all wasted upon my companion, who was
sunk in the deepest thought.
“It’s this way, Watson,” said he at last. “We may leave the question of who
killed John Straker for the instant, and confine ourselves to finding out what
has become of the horse. Now, supposing that he broke away during or after
the tragedy, where could he have gone to? The horse is a very gregarious
creature. If left to himself his instincts would have been either to return to
King’s Pyland or go over to Mapleton. Why should he run wild upon the
moor? He would surely have been seen by now. And why should gypsies
kidnap him? These people always clear out when they hear of trouble, for they
do not wish to be pestered by the police. They could not hope to sell such a
horse. They would run a great risk and gain nothing by taking him. Surely that
is clear.”
“I have already said that he must have gone to King’s Pyland or to Mapleton.
He is not at King’s Pyland. Therefore he is at Mapleton. Let us take that as a
working hypothesis and see what it leads us to. This part of the moor, as the
Inspector remarked, is very hard and dry. But it falls away towards Mapleton,
and you can see from here that there is a long hollow over yonder, which must
have been very wet on Monday night. If our supposition is correct, then the
horse must have crossed that, and there is the point where we should look for
his tracks.”
We had been walking briskly during this conversation, and a few more minutes
brought us to the hollow in question. At Holmes’ request I walked down the
bank to the right, and he to the left, but I had not taken fifty paces before I
heard him give a shout, and saw him waving his hand to me. The track of a
horse was plainly outlined in the soft earth in front of him, and the shoe which
he took from his pocket exactly fitted the impression.
“See the value of imagination,” said Holmes. “It is the one quality which
Gregory lacks. We imagined what might have happened, acted upon the
supposition, and find ourselves justified. Let us proceed.”
We crossed the marshy bottom and passed over a quarter of a mile of dry, hard
turf. Again the ground sloped, and again we came on the tracks. Then we lost
them for half a mile, but only to pick them up once more quite close to
Mapleton. It was Holmes who saw them first, and he stood pointing with a
look of triumph upon his face. A man’s track was visible beside the horse’s.
The double track turned sharp off and took the direction of King’s Pyland.
Holmes whistled, and we both followed along after it. His eyes were on the
trail, but I happened to look a little to one side, and saw to my surprise the
same tracks coming back again in the opposite direction.
“One for you, Watson,” said Holmes, when I pointed it out. “You have saved
us a long walk, which would have brought us back on our own traces. Let us
follow the return track.”
We had not to go far. It ended at the paving of asphalt which led up to the
gates of the Mapleton stables. As we approached, a groom ran out from them.
“I only wished to ask a question,” said Holmes, with his finger and thumb in
his waistcoat pocket. “Should I be too early to see your master, Mr. Silas
Brown, if I were to call at five o’clock to-morrow morning?”
“Bless you, sir, if any one is about he will be, for he is always the first stirring.
But here he is, sir, to answer your questions for himself. No, sir, no; it is as
much as my place is worth to let him see me touch your money. Afterwards, if
you like.”
As Sherlock Holmes replaced the half-crown which he had drawn from his
pocket, a fierce-looking elderly man strode out from the gate with a hunting-
crop swinging in his hand.
“What’s this, Dawson!” he cried. “No gossiping! Go about your business! And
you, what the devil do you want here?”
“Ten minutes’ talk with you, my good sir,” said Holmes in the sweetest of
voices.
“Very good. Shall we argue about it here in public or talk it over in your
parlor?”
Holmes smiled. “I shall not keep you more than a few minutes, Watson,” said
he. “Now, Mr. Brown, I am quite at your disposal.”
It was twenty minutes, and the reds had all faded into grays before Holmes and
the trainer reappeared. Never have I seen such a change as had been brought
about in Silas Brown in that short time. His face was ashy pale, beads of
perspiration shone upon his brow, and his hands shook until the hunting-crop
wagged like a branch in the wind. His bullying, overbearing manner was all
gone too, and he cringed along at my companion’s side like a dog with its
master.
“There must be no mistake,” said Holmes, looking round at him. The other
winced as he read the menace in his eyes.
“Oh no, there shall be no mistake. It shall be there. Should I change it first or
not?”
Holmes thought a little and then burst out laughing. “No, don’t,” said he; “I
shall write to you about it. No tricks, now, or—”
“Yes, I think I can. Well, you shall hear from me to-morrow.” He turned upon
his heel, disregarding the trembling hand which the other held out to him, and
we set off for King’s Pyland.
“A more perfect compound of the bully, coward, and sneak than Master Silas
Brown I have seldom met with,” remarked Holmes as we trudged along
together.
“He tried to bluster out of it, but I described to him so exactly what his actions
had been upon that morning that he is convinced that I was watching him. Of
course you observed the peculiarly square toes in the impressions, and that his
own boots exactly corresponded to them. Again, of course no subordinate
would have dared to do such a thing. I described to him how, when according
to his custom he was the first down, he perceived a strange horse wandering
over the moor. How he went out to it, and his astonishment at recognizing,
from the white forehead which has given the favorite its name, that chance had
put in his power the only horse which could beat the one upon which he had
put his money. Then I described how his first impulse had been to lead him
back to King’s Pyland, and how the devil had shown him how he could hide
the horse until the race was over, and how he had led it back and concealed it
at Mapleton. When I told him every detail he gave it up and thought only of
saving his own skin.”
“But are you not afraid to leave the horse in his power now, since he has every
interest in injuring it?”
“My dear fellow, he will guard it as the apple of his eye. He knows that his only
hope of mercy is to produce it safe.”
“Colonel Ross did not impress me as a man who would be likely to show much
mercy in any case.”
“The matter does not rest with Colonel Ross. I follow my own methods, and
tell as much or as little as I choose. That is the advantage of being unofficial. I
don’t know whether you observed it, Watson, but the Colonel’s manner has
been just a trifle cavalier to me. I am inclined now to have a little amusement at
his expense. Say nothing to him about the horse.”
“And of course this is all quite a minor point compared to the question of who
killed John Straker.”
“My friend and I return to town by the night-express,” said Holmes. “We have
had a charming little breath of your beautiful Dartmoor air.”
The Inspector opened his eyes, and the Colonel’s lip curled in a sneer.
“So you despair of arresting the murderer of poor Straker,” said he.
Holmes shrugged his shoulders. “There are certainly grave difficulties in the
way,” said he. “I have every hope, however, that your horse will start upon
Tuesday, and I beg that you will have your jockey in readiness. Might I ask for a
photograph of Mr. John Straker?”
“My dear Gregory, you anticipate all my wants. If I might ask you to wait here
for an instant, I have a question which I should like to put to the maid.”
“I must say that I am rather disappointed in our London consultant,” said
Colonel Ross, bluntly, as my friend left the room. “I do not see that we are any
further than when he came.”
“At least you have his assurance that your horse will run,” said I.
“Yes, I have his assurance,” said the Colonel, with a shrug of his shoulders. “I
should prefer to have the horse.”
I was about to make some reply in defence of my friend when he entered the
room again.
As we stepped into the carriage one of the stable-lads held the door open for
us. A sudden idea seemed to occur to Holmes, for he leaned forward and
touched the lad upon the sleeve.
“You have a few sheep in the paddock,” he said. “Who attends to them?”
“I do, sir.”
“Well, sir, not of much account; but three of them have gone lame, sir.”
I could see that Holmes was extremely pleased, for he chuckled and rubbed his
hands together.
“A long shot, Watson; a very long shot,” said he, pinching my arm. “Gregory,
let me recommend to your attention this singular epidemic among the sheep.
Drive on, coachman!”
Colonel Ross still wore an expression which showed the poor opinion which
he had formed of my companion’s ability, but I saw by the Inspector’s face that
his attention had been keenly aroused.
“Exceedingly so.”
“Is there any point to which you would wish to draw my attention?”
Four days later Holmes and I were again in the train, bound for Winchester to
see the race for the Wessex Cup. Colonel Ross met us by appointment outside
the station, and we drove in his drag to the course beyond the town. His face
was grave, and his manner was cold in the extreme.
“I suppose that you would know him when you saw him?” asked Holmes.
The Colonel was very angry. “I have been on the turf for twenty years, and
never was asked such a question as that before,” said he. “A child would know
Silver Blaze, with his white forehead and his mottled off-foreleg.”
“Well, that is the curious part of it. You could have got fifteen to one yesterday,
but the price has become shorter and shorter, until you can hardly get three to
one now.”
As the drag drew up in the enclosure near the grand stand I glanced at the card
to see the entries.
Wessex Plate [it ran] 50 sovs each h ft with 1000 sovs added for four and five
year olds. Second, L300. Third, L200. New course (one mile and five furlongs).
Mr. Heath Newton’s The Negro. Red cap. Cinnamon jacket. Colonel
Wardlaw’s Pugilist. Pink cap. Blue and black jacket. Lord Backwater’s
Desborough. Yellow cap and sleeves. Colonel Ross’s Silver Blaze. Black cap.
Red jacket. Duke of Balmoral’s Iris. Yellow and black stripes. Lord Singleford’s
Rasper. Purple cap. Black sleeves.
“We scratched our other one, and put all hopes on your word,” said the
Colonel. “Why, what is that? Silver Blaze favorite?”
“Five to four against Silver Blaze!” roared the ring. “Five to four against Silver
Blaze! Five to fifteen against Desborough! Five to four on the field!”
“There are the numbers up,” I cried. “They are all six there.”
“All six there? Then my horse is running,” cried the Colonel in great agitation.
“But I don’t see him. My colors have not passed.”
As I spoke a powerful bay horse swept out from the weighing enclosure and
cantered past us, bearing on its back the well-known black and red of the
Colonel.
“That’s not my horse,” cried the owner. “That beast has not a white hair upon
its body. What is this that you have done, Mr. Holmes?”
“Well, well, let us see how he gets on,” said my friend, imperturbably. For a few
minutes he gazed through my field-glass. “Capital! An excellent start!” he cried
suddenly. “There they are, coming round the curve!”
From our drag we had a superb view as they came up the straight. The six
horses were so close together that a carpet could have covered them, but half
way up the yellow of the Mapleton stable showed to the front. Before they
reached us, however, Desborough’s bolt was shot, and the Colonel’s horse,
coming away with a rush, passed the post a good six lengths before its rival, the
Duke of Balmoral’s Iris making a bad third.
“It’s my race, anyhow,” gasped the Colonel, passing his hand over his eyes. “I
confess that I can make neither head nor tail of it. Don’t you think that you
have kept up your mystery long enough, Mr. Holmes?”
“Certainly, Colonel, you shall know everything. Let us all go round and have a
look at the horse together. Here he is,” he continued, as we made our way into
the weighing enclosure, where only owners and their friends find admittance.
“You have only to wash his face and his leg in spirits of wine, and you will find
that he is the same old Silver Blaze as ever.”
“You take my breath away!”
“I found him in the hands of a faker, and took the liberty of running him just
as he was sent over.”
“My dear sir, you have done wonders. The horse looks very fit and well. It
never went better in its life. I owe you a thousand apologies for having doubted
your ability. You have done me a great service by recovering my horse. You
would do me a greater still if you could lay your hands on the murderer of John
Straker.”
The Colonel and I stared at him in amazement. “You have got him! Where is
he, then?”
“He is here.”
“Here! Where?”
Sherlock Holmes laughed. “I assure you that I have not associated you with the
crime, Colonel,” said he. “The real murderer is standing immediately behind
you.” He stepped past and laid his hand upon the glossy neck of the
thoroughbred.
“Yes, the horse. And it may lessen his guilt if I say that it was done in self-
defence, and that John Straker was a man who was entirely unworthy of your
confidence. But there goes the bell, and as I stand to win a little on this next
race, I shall defer a lengthy explanation until a more fitting time.”
“I confess,” said he, “that any theories which I had formed from the
newspaper reports were entirely erroneous. And yet there were indications
there, had they not been overlaid by other details which concealed their true
import. I went to Devonshire with the conviction that Fitzroy Simpson was the
true culprit, although, of course, I saw that the evidence against him was by no
means complete. It was while I was in the carriage, just as we reached the
trainer’s house, that the immense significance of the curried mutton occurred
to me. You may remember that I was distrait, and remained sitting after you
had all alighted. I was marvelling in my own mind how I could possibly have
overlooked so obvious a clue.”
“I confess,” said the Colonel, “that even now I cannot see how it helps us.”
“It was the first link in my chain of reasoning. Powdered opium is by no means
tasteless. The flavor is not disagreeable, but it is perceptible. Were it mixed with
any ordinary dish the eater would undoubtedly detect it, and would probably
eat no more. A curry was exactly the medium which would disguise this taste.
By no possible supposition could this stranger, Fitzroy Simpson, have caused
curry to be served in the trainer’s family that night, and it is surely too
monstrous a coincidence to suppose that he happened to come along with
powdered opium upon the very night when a dish happened to be served
which would disguise the flavor. That is unthinkable. Therefore Simpson
becomes eliminated from the case, and our attention centers upon Straker and
his wife, the only two people who could have chosen curried mutton for
supper that night. The opium was added after the dish was set aside for the
stable-boy, for the others had the same for supper with no ill effects. Which of
them, then, had access to that dish without the maid seeing them?
“Before deciding that question I had grasped the significance of the silence of
the dog, for one true inference invariably suggests others. The Simpson
incident had shown me that a dog was kept in the stables, and yet, though some
one had been in and had fetched out a horse, he had not barked enough to
arouse the two lads in the loft. Obviously the midnight visitor was some one
whom the dog knew well.
“I was already convinced, or almost convinced, that John Straker went down to
the stables in the dead of the night and took out Silver Blaze. For what
purpose? For a dishonest one, obviously, or why should he drug his own
stable-boy? And yet I was at a loss to know why. There have been cases before
now where trainers have made sure of great sums of money by laying against
their own horses, through agents, and then preventing them from winning by
fraud. Sometimes it is a pulling jockey. Sometimes it is some surer and subtler
means. What was it here? I hoped that the contents of his pockets might help
me to form a conclusion.
“And they did so. You cannot have forgotten the singular knife which was
found in the dead man’s hand, a knife which certainly no sane man would
choose for a weapon. It was, as Dr. Watson told us, a form of knife which is
used for the most delicate operations known in surgery. And it was to be used
for a delicate operation that night. You must know, with your wide experience
of turf matters, Colonel Ross, that it is possible to make a slight nick upon the
tendons of a horse’s ham, and to do it subcutaneously, so as to leave absolutely
no trace. A horse so treated would develop a slight lameness, which would be
put down to a strain in exercise or a touch of rheumatism, but never to foul
play.”
“We have here the explanation of why John Straker wished to take the horse
out on to the moor. So spirited a creature would have certainly roused the
soundest of sleepers when it felt the prick of the knife. It was absolutely
necessary to do it in the open air.”
“I have been blind!” cried the Colonel. “Of course that was why he needed the
candle, and struck the match.”
“Wonderful!” cried the Colonel. “Wonderful! You might have been there!”
“My final shot was, I confess a very long one. It struck me that so astute a man
as Straker would not undertake this delicate tendon-nicking without a little
practice. What could he practice on? My eyes fell upon the sheep, and I asked a
question which, rather to my surprise, showed that my surmise was correct.
“When I returned to London I called upon the milliner, who had recognized
Straker as an excellent customer of the name of Derbyshire, who had a very
dashing wife, with a strong partiality for expensive dresses. I have no doubt
that this woman had plunged him over head and ears in debt, and so led him
into this miserable plot.”
“You have explained all but one thing,” cried the Colonel. “Where was the
horse?”
“Ah, it bolted, and was cared for by one of your neighbors. We must have an
amnesty in that direction, I think. This is Clapham Junction, if I am not
mistaken, and we shall be in Victoria in less than ten minutes. If you care to
smoke a cigar in our rooms, Colonel, I shall be happy to give you any other
details which might interest you.”
[In publishing these short sketches based upon the numerous cases in which
my companion’s singular gifts have made us the listeners to, and eventually the
actors in, some strange drama, it is only natural that I should dwell rather upon
his successes than upon his failures. And this not so much for the sake of his
reputation—for, indeed, it was when he was at his wits’ end that his energy and
his versatility were most admirable—but because where he failed it happened
too often that no one else succeeded, and that the tale was left forever without
a conclusion. Now and again, however, it chanced that even when he erred, the
truth was still discovered. I have noted of some half-dozen cases of the kind;
the Adventure of the Musgrave Ritual and that which I am about to recount are
the two which present the strongest features of interest.]
Sherlock Holmes was a man who seldom took exercise for exercise’s sake. Few
men were capable of greater muscular effort, and he was undoubtedly one of
the finest boxers of his weight that I have ever seen; but he looked upon
aimless bodily exertion as a waste of energy, and he seldom bestirred himself
save when there was some professional object to be served. Then he was
absolutely untiring and indefatigable. That he should have kept himself in
training under such circumstances is remarkable, but his diet was usually of the
sparest, and his habits were simple to the verge of austerity. Save for the
occasional use of cocaine, he had no vices, and he only turned to the drug as a
protest against the monotony of existence when cases were scanty and the
papers uninteresting.
One day in early spring he had so far relaxed as to go for a walk with me in the
Park, where the first faint shoots of green were breaking out upon the elms,
and the sticky spear-heads of the chestnuts were just beginning to burst into
their five-fold leaves. For two hours we rambled about together, in silence for
the most part, as befits two men who know each other intimately. It was nearly
five before we were back in Baker Street once more.
“Beg pardon, sir,” said our page-boy, as he opened the door. “There’s been a
gentleman here asking for you, sir.”
Holmes glanced reproachfully at me. “So much for afternoon walks!” said he.
“Has this gentleman gone, then?”
“Yes, sir.”
“Well, well, you did your best,” said Holmes, as we walked into our room. “It’s
very annoying, though, Watson. I was badly in need of a case, and this looks,
from the man’s impatience, as if it were of importance. Hullo! That’s not your
pipe on the table. He must have left his behind him. A nice old brier with a
good long stem of what the tobacconists call amber. I wonder how many real
amber mouthpieces there are in London? Some people think that a fly in it is a
sign. Well, he must have been disturbed in his mind to leave a pipe behind him
which he evidently values highly.”
“Well, I should put the original cost of the pipe at seven and sixpence. Now it
has, you see, been twice mended, once in the wooden stem and once in the
amber. Each of these mends, done, as you observe, with silver bands, must
have cost more than the pipe did originally. The man must value the pipe
highly when he prefers to patch it up rather than buy a new one with the same
money.”
“Anything else?” I asked, for Holmes was turning the pipe about in his hand,
and staring at it in his peculiar pensive way.
“Pipes are occasionally of extraordinary interest,” said he. “Nothing has more
individuality, save perhaps watches and bootlaces. The indications here,
however, are neither very marked nor very important. The owner is obviously a
muscular man, left-handed, with an excellent set of teeth, careless in his habits,
and with no need to practise economy.”
My friend threw out the information in a very offhand way, but I saw that he
cocked his eye at me to see if I had followed his reasoning.
“You think a man must be well-to-do if he smokes a seven-shilling pipe,” said
I.
“He has been in the habit of lighting his pipe at lamps and gas-jets. You can see
that it is quite charred all down one side. Of course a match could not have
done that. Why should a man hold a match to the side of his pipe? But you
cannot light it at a lamp without getting the bowl charred. And it is all on the
right side of the pipe. From that I gather that he is a left-handed man. You hold
your own pipe to the lamp, and see how naturally you, being right-handed, hold
the left side to the flame. You might do it once the other way, but not as a
constancy. This has always been held so. Then he has bitten through his amber.
It takes a muscular, energetic fellow, and one with a good set of teeth, to do
that. But if I am not mistaken I hear him upon the stair, so we shall have
something more interesting than his pipe to study.”
An instant later our door opened, and a tall young man entered the room. He
was well but quietly dressed in a dark-gray suit, and carried a brown wide-awake
in his hand. I should have put him at about thirty, though he was really some
years older.
“I beg your pardon,” said he, with some embarrassment; “I suppose I should
have knocked. Yes, of course I should have knocked. The fact is that I am a
little upset, and you must put it all down to that.” He passed his hand over his
forehead like a man who is half dazed, and then fell rather than sat down upon
a chair.
“I can see that you have not slept for a night or two,” said Holmes, in his easy,
genial way. “That tries a man’s nerves more than work, and more even than
pleasure. May I ask how I can help you?”
“I wanted your advice, sir. I don’t know what to do and my whole life seems to
have gone to pieces.”
“It’s a very delicate thing,” said he. “One does not like to speak of one’s
domestic affairs to strangers. It seems dreadful to discuss the conduct of one’s
wife with two men whom I have never seen before. It’s horrible to have to do
it. But I’ve got to the end of my tether, and I must have advice.”
Our visitor sprang from his chair. “What!” he cried, “you know my name?”
“If you wish to preserve your incognito,” said Holmes, smiling, “I would
suggest that you cease to write your name upon the lining of your hat, or else
that you turn the crown towards the person whom you are addressing. I was
about to say that my friend and I have listened to a good many strange secrets
in this room, and that we have had the good fortune to bring peace to many
troubled souls. I trust that we may do as much for you. Might I beg you, as
time may prove to be of importance, to furnish me with the facts of your case
without further delay?”
Our visitor again passed his hand over his forehead, as if he found it bitterly
hard. From every gesture and expression I could see that he was a reserved,
self-contained man, with a dash of pride in his nature, more likely to hide his
wounds than to expose them. Then suddenly, with a fierce gesture of his closed
hand, like one who throws reserve to the winds, he began.
“The facts are these, Mr. Holmes,” said he. “I am a married man, and have
been so for three years. During that time my wife and I have loved each other
as fondly and lived as happily as any two that ever were joined. We have not
had a difference, not one, in thought or word or deed. And now, since last
Monday, there has suddenly sprung up a barrier between us, and I find that
there is something in her life and in her thought of which I know as little as if
she were the woman who brushes by me in the street. We are estranged, and I
want to know why.
“Now there is one thing that I want to impress upon you before I go any
further, Mr. Holmes. Effie loves me. Don’t let there be any mistake about that.
She loves me with her whole heart and soul, and never more than now. I know
it. I feel it. I don’t want to argue about that. A man can tell easily enough when
a woman loves him. But there’s this secret between us, and we can never be the
same until it is cleared.”
“Kindly let me have the facts, Mr. Munro,” said Holmes, with some
impatience.
“I’ll tell you what I know about Effie’s history. She was a widow when I met
her first, though quite young—only twenty-five. Her name then was Mrs.
Hebron. She went out to America when she was young, and lived in the town
of Atlanta, where she married this Hebron, who was a lawyer with a good
practice. They had one child, but the yellow fever broke out badly in the place,
and both husband and child died of it. I have seen his death certificate. This
sickened her of America, and she came back to live with a maiden aunt at
Pinner, in Middlesex. I may mention that her husband had left her comfortably
off, and that she had a capital of about four thousand five hundred pounds,
which had been so well invested by him that it returned an average of seven per
cent. She had only been six months at Pinner when I met her; we fell in love
with each other, and we married a few weeks afterwards.
“There’s one thing I ought to tell you before I go further. When we married,
my wife made over all her property to me—rather against my will, for I saw
how awkward it would be if my business affairs went wrong. However, she
would have it so, and it was done. Well, about six weeks ago she came to me.
“‘Jack,’ said she, ‘when you took my money you said that if ever I wanted any I
was to ask you for it.’
“‘Certainly,’ said I. ‘It’s all your own.’
“I was a bit staggered at this, for I had imagined it was simply a new dress or
something of the kind that she was after.
“‘Oh,’ said she, in her playful way, ‘you said that you were only my banker, and
bankers never ask questions, you know.’
“‘If you really mean it, of course you shall have the money,’ said I.
“So I had to be content with that, though it was the first time that there had
ever been any secret between us. I gave her a check, and I never thought any
more of the matter. It may have nothing to do with what came afterwards, but
I thought it only right to mention it.
“Well, I told you just now that there is a cottage not far from our house. There
is just a field between us, but to reach it you have to go along the road and then
turn down a lane. Just beyond it is a nice little grove of Scotch firs, and I used
to be very fond of strolling down there, for trees are always a neighborly kind
of things. The cottage had been standing empty this eight months, and it was a
pity, for it was a pretty two-storied place, with an old-fashioned porch and
honeysuckle about it. I have stood many a time and thought what a neat little
homestead it would make.
“Well, last Monday evening I was taking a stroll down that way, when I met an
empty van coming up the lane, and saw a pile of carpets and things lying about
on the grass-plot beside the porch. It was clear that the cottage had at last been
let. I walked past it, and wondered what sort of folk they were who had come
to live so near us. And as I looked I suddenly became aware that a face was
watching me out of one of the upper windows.
“I don’t know what there was about that face, Mr. Holmes, but it seemed to
send a chill right down my back. I was some little way off, so that I could not
make out the features, but there was something unnatural and inhuman about
the face. That was the impression that I had, and I moved quickly forwards to
get a nearer view of the person who was watching me. But as I did so the face
suddenly disappeared, so suddenly that it seemed to have been plucked away
into the darkness of the room. I stood for five minutes thinking the business
over, and trying to analyze my impressions. I could not tell if the face were that
of a man or a woman. It had been too far from me for that. But its color was
what had impressed me most. It was of a livid chalky white, and with
something set and rigid about it which was shockingly unnatural. So disturbed
was I that I determined to see a little more of the new inmates of the cottage. I
approached and knocked at the door, which was instantly opened by a tall,
gaunt woman with a harsh, forbidding face.
“‘I am your neighbor over yonder,’ said I, nodding towards my house. ‘I see
that you have only just moved in, so I thought that if I could be of any help to
you in any—’
“‘Ay, we’ll just ask ye when we want ye,’ said she, and shut the door in my face.
Annoyed at the churlish rebuff, I turned my back and walked home. All
evening, though I tried to think of other things, my mind would still turn to the
apparition at the window and the rudeness of the woman. I determined to say
nothing about the former to my wife, for she is a nervous, highly strung
woman, and I had no wish that she would share the unpleasant impression
which had been produced upon myself. I remarked to her, however, before I
fell asleep, that the cottage was now occupied, to which she returned no reply.
“I had sat for about twenty minutes turning the thing over in my mind and
trying to find some possible explanation. The more I thought, the more
extraordinary and inexplicable did it appear. I was still puzzling over it when I
heard the door gently close again, and her footsteps coming up the stairs.
“‘Where in the world have you been, Effie?’ I asked as she entered.
“She gave a violent start and a kind of gasping cry when I spoke, and that cry
and start troubled me more than all the rest, for there was something
indescribably guilty about them. My wife had always been a woman of a frank,
open nature, and it gave me a chill to see her slinking into her own room, and
crying out and wincing when her own husband spoke to her.
“‘You awake, Jack!’ she cried, with a nervous laugh. ‘Why, I thought that
nothing could awake you.’
“‘I don’t wonder that you are surprised,’ said she, and I could see that her
fingers were trembling as she undid the fastenings of her mantle. ‘Why, I never
remember having done such a thing in my life before. The fact is that I felt as
though I were choking, and had a perfect longing for a breath of fresh air. I
really think that I should have fainted if I had not gone out. I stood at the door
for a few minutes, and now I am quite myself again.’
“All the time that she was telling me this story she never once looked in my
direction, and her voice was quite unlike her usual tones. It was evident to me
that she was saying what was false. I said nothing in reply, but turned my face
to the wall, sick at heart, with my mind filled with a thousand venomous doubts
and suspicions. What was it that my wife was concealing from me? Where had
she been during that strange expedition? I felt that I should have no peace until
I knew, and yet I shrank from asking her again after once she had told me what
was false. All the rest of the night I tossed and tumbled, framing theory after
theory, each more unlikely than the last.
“I should have gone to the City that day, but I was too disturbed in my mind to
be able to pay attention to business matters. My wife seemed to be as upset as
myself, and I could see from the little questioning glances which she kept
shooting at me that she understood that I disbelieved her statement, and that
she was at her wits’ end what to do. We hardly exchanged a word during
breakfast, and immediately afterwards I went out for a walk, that I might think
the matter out in the fresh morning air.
“I went as far as the Crystal Palace, spent an hour in the grounds, and was back
in Norbury by one o’clock. It happened that my way took me past the cottage,
and I stopped for an instant to look at the windows, and to see if I could catch
a glimpse of the strange face which had looked out at me on the day before. As
I stood there, imagine my surprise, Mr. Holmes, when the door suddenly
opened and my wife walked out.
“I was struck dumb with astonishment at the sight of her; but my emotions
were nothing to those which showed themselves upon her face when our eyes
met. She seemed for an instant to wish to shrink back inside the house again;
and then, seeing how useless all concealment must be, she came forward, with a
very white face and frightened eyes which belied the smile upon her lips.
“‘Ah, Jack,’ she said, ‘I have just been in to see if I can be of any assistance to
our new neighbors. Why do you look at me like that, Jack? You are not angry
with me?’
“‘You came here. I am sure of it. Who are these people, that you should visit
them at such an hour?’
“‘How can you tell me what you know is false?’ I cried. ‘Your very voice
changes as you speak. When have I ever had a secret from you? I shall enter
that cottage, and I shall probe the matter to the bottom.’
“‘No, no, Jack, for God’s sake!’ she gasped, in uncontrollable emotion. Then,
as I approached the door, she seized my sleeve and pulled me back with
convulsive strength.
“‘I implore you not to do this, Jack,’ she cried. ‘I swear that I will tell you
everything some day, but nothing but misery can come of it if you enter that
cottage.’ Then, as I tried to shake her off, she clung to me in a frenzy of
entreaty.
“‘Trust me, Jack!’ she cried. ‘Trust me only this once. You will never have cause
to regret it. You know that I would not have a secret from you if it were not for
your own sake. Our whole lives are at stake in this. If you come home with me,
all will be well. If you force your way into that cottage, all is over between us.’
“There was such earnestness, such despair, in her manner that her words
arrested me, and I stood irresolute before the door.
“‘I will trust you on one condition, and on one condition only,’ said I at last. ‘It
is that this mystery comes to an end from now. You are at liberty to preserve
your secret, but you must promise me that there shall be no more nightly visits,
no more doings which are kept from my knowledge. I am willing to forget
those which are passed if you will promise that there shall be no more in the
future.’
“‘I was sure that you would trust me,’ she cried, with a great sigh of relief. ‘It
shall be just as you wish. Come away—oh, come away up to the house.’
“Still pulling at my sleeve, she led me away from the cottage. As we went I
glanced back, and there was that yellow livid face watching us out of the upper
window. What link could there be between that creature and my wife? Or how
could the coarse, rough woman whom I had seen the day before be connected
with her? It was a strange puzzle, and yet I knew that my mind could never
know ease again until I had solved it.
“For two days after this I stayed at home, and my wife appeared to abide loyally
by our engagement, for, as far as I know, she never stirred out of the house.
On the third day, however, I had ample evidence that her solemn promise was
not enough to hold her back from this secret influence which drew her away
from her husband and her duty.
“I had gone into town on that day, but I returned by the 2.40 instead of the
3.36, which is my usual train. As I entered the house the maid ran into the hall
with a startled face.
“‘I think that she has gone out for a walk,’ she answered.
“My mind was instantly filled with suspicion. I rushed upstairs to make sure
that she was not in the house. As I did so I happened to glance out of one of
the upper windows, and saw the maid with whom I had just been speaking
running across the field in the direction of the cottage. Then of course I saw
exactly what it all meant. My wife had gone over there, and had asked the
servant to call her if I should return. Tingling with anger, I rushed down and
hurried across, determined to end the matter once and forever. I saw my wife
and the maid hurrying back along the lane, but I did not stop to speak with
them. In the cottage lay the secret which was casting a shadow over my life. I
vowed that, come what might, it should be a secret no longer. I did not even
knock when I reached it, but turned the handle and rushed into the passage.
“It was all still and quiet upon the ground floor. In the kitchen a kettle was
singing on the fire, and a large black cat lay coiled up in the basket; but there
was no sign of the woman whom I had seen before. I ran into the other room,
but it was equally deserted. Then I rushed up the stairs, only to find two other
rooms empty and deserted at the top. There was no one at all in the whole
house. The furniture and pictures were of the most common and vulgar
description, save in the one chamber at the window of which I had seen the
strange face. That was comfortable and elegant, and all my suspicions rose into
a fierce bitter flame when I saw that on the mantelpiece stood a copy of a full-
length photograph of my wife, which had been taken at my request only three
months ago.
“I stayed long enough to make certain that the house was absolutely empty.
Then I left it, feeling a weight at my heart such as I had never had before. My
wife came out into the hall as I entered my house; but I was too hurt and angry
to speak with her, and pushing past her, I made my way into my study. She
followed me, however, before I could close the door.
“‘I am sorry that I broke my promise, Jack,’ said she; ‘but if you knew all the
circumstances I am sure that you would forgive me.’
“‘Tell me everything, then,’ said I.
“‘Until you tell me who it is that has been living in that cottage, and who it is to
whom you have given that photograph, there can never be any confidence
between us,’ said I, and breaking away from her, I left the house. That was
yesterday, Mr. Holmes, and I have not seen her since, nor do I know anything
more about this strange business. It is the first shadow that has come between
us, and it has so shaken me that I do not know what I should do for the best.
Suddenly this morning it occurred to me that you were the man to advise me,
so I have hurried to you now, and I place myself unreservedly in your hands. If
there is any point which I have not made clear, pray question me about it. But,
above all, tell me quickly what I am to do, for this misery is more than I can
bear.”
Holmes and I had listened with the utmost interest to this extraordinary
statement, which had been delivered in the jerky, broken fashion of a man who
is under the influence of extreme emotions. My companion sat silent for some
time, with his chin upon his hand, lost in thought.
“Tell me,” said he at last, “could you swear that this was a man’s face which
you saw at the window?”
“Each time that I saw it I was some distance away from it, so that it is
impossible for me to say.”
“It seemed to be of an unnatural color, and to have a strange rigidity about the
features. When I approached, it vanished with a jerk.”
“How long is it since your wife asked you for a hundred pounds?”
“No; there was a great fire at Atlanta very shortly after his death, and all her
papers were destroyed.”
“And yet she had a certificate of death. You say that you saw it.”
“Did you ever meet any one who knew her in America?”
“No.”
“No.”
“No.”
“Thank you. I should like to think over the matter a little now. If the cottage is
now permanently deserted we may have some difficulty. If, on the other hand,
as I fancy is more likely, the inmates were warned of your coming, and left
before you entered yesterday, then they may be back now, and we should clear
it all up easily. Let me advise you, then, to return to Norbury, and to examine
the windows of the cottage again. If you have reason to believe that it is
inhabited, do not force your way in, but send a wire to my friend and me. We
shall be with you within an hour of receiving it, and we shall then very soon get
to the bottom of the business.”
“In that case I shall come out to-morrow and talk it over with you. Good-by;
and, above all, do not fret until you know that you really have a cause for it.”
“Yes, a provisional one. But I shall be surprised if it does not turn out to be
correct. This woman’s first husband is in that cottage.”
“How else can we explain her frenzied anxiety that her second one should not
enter it? The facts, as I read them, are something like this: This woman was
married in America. Her husband developed some hateful qualities; or shall we
say that he contracted some loathsome disease, and became a leper or an
imbecile? She flies from him at last, returns to England, changes her name, and
starts her life, as she thinks, afresh. She has been married three years, and
believes that her position is quite secure, having shown her husband the death
certificate of some man whose name she has assumed, when suddenly her
whereabouts is discovered by her first husband; or, we may suppose, by some
unscrupulous woman who has attached herself to the invalid. They write to the
wife, and threaten to come and expose her. She asks for a hundred pounds, and
endeavors to buy them off. They come in spite of it, and when the husband
mentions casually to the wife that there are new-comers in the cottage, she
knows in some way that they are her pursuers. She waits until her husband is
asleep, and then she rushes down to endeavor to persuade them to leave her in
peace. Having no success, she goes again next morning, and her husband meets
her, as he has told us, as she comes out. She promises him then not to go there
again, but two days afterwards the hope of getting rid of those dreadful
neighbors was too strong for her, and she made another attempt, taking down
with her the photograph which had probably been demanded from her. In the
midst of this interview the maid rushed in to say that the master had come
home, on which the wife, knowing that he would come straight down to the
cottage, hurried the inmates out at the back door, into the grove of fir-trees,
probably, which was mentioned as standing near. In this way he found the
place deserted. I shall be very much surprised, however, if it is still so when he
reconnoitres it this evening. What do you think of my theory?”
But we had not a very long time to wait for that. It came just as we had finished
our tea. “The cottage is still tenanted,” it said. “Have seen the face again at the
window. Will meet the seven o’clock train, and will take no steps until you
arrive.”
He was waiting on the platform when we stepped out, and we could see in the
light of the station lamps that he was very pale, and quivering with agitation.
“They are still there, Mr. Holmes,” said he, laying his hand hard upon my
friend’s sleeve. “I saw lights in the cottage as I came down. We shall settle it
now once and for all.”
“What is your plan, then?” asked Holmes, as he walked down the dark tree-
lined road.
“I am going to force my way in and see for myself who is in the house. I wish
you both to be there as witnesses.”
“You are quite determined to do this, in spite of your wife’s warning that it is
better that you should not solve the mystery?”
“Yes, I am determined.”
“Well, I think that you are in the right. Any truth is better than indefinite
doubt. We had better go up at once. Of course, legally, we are putting ourselves
hopelessly in the wrong; but I think that it is worth it.”
It was a very dark night, and a thin rain began to fall as we turned from the
high road into a narrow lane, deeply rutted, with hedges on either side. Mr.
Grant Munro pushed impatiently forward, however, and we stumbled after him
as best we could.
We turned a corner in the lane as he spoke, and there was the building close
beside us. A yellow bar falling across the black foreground showed that the
door was not quite closed, and one window in the upper story was brightly
illuminated. As we looked, we saw a dark blur moving across the blind.
“There is that creature!” cried Grant Munro. “You can see for yourselves that
some one is there. Now follow me, and we shall soon know all.”
We approached the door; but suddenly a woman appeared out of the shadow
and stood in the golden track of the lamp-light. I could not see her face in the
darkness, but her arms were thrown out in an attitude of entreaty.
“For God’s sake, don’t Jack!” she cried. “I had a presentiment that you would
come this evening. Think better of it, dear! Trust me again, and you will never
have cause to regret it.”
“I have trusted you too long, Effie,” he cried, sternly. “Leave go of me! I must
pass you. My friends and I are going to settle this matter once and forever!” He
pushed her to one side, and we followed closely after him. As he threw the
door open an old woman ran out in front of him and tried to bar his passage,
but he thrust her back, and an instant afterwards we were all upon the stairs.
Grant Munro rushed into the lighted room at the top, and we entered at his
heels.
It was a cosey, well-furnished apartment, with two candles burning upon the
table and two upon the mantelpiece. In the corner, stooping over a desk, there
sat what appeared to be a little girl. Her face was turned away as we entered,
but we could see that she was dressed in a red frock, and that she had long
white gloves on. As she whisked round to us, I gave a cry of surprise and
horror. The face which she turned towards us was of the strangest livid tint,
and the features were absolutely devoid of any expression. An instant later the
mystery was explained. Holmes, with a laugh, passed his hand behind the
child’s ear, a mask peeled off from her countenance, and there was a little coal
black negress, with all her white teeth flashing in amusement at our amazed
faces. I burst out laughing, out of sympathy with her merriment; but Grant
Munro stood staring, with his hand clutching his throat.
“I will tell you the meaning of it,” cried the lady, sweeping into the room with a
proud, set face. “You have forced me, against my own judgment, to tell you,
and now we must both make the best of it. My husband died at Atlanta. My
child survived.”
“Your child?”
She drew a large silver locket from her bosom. “You have never seen this
open.”
She touched a spring, and the front hinged back. There was a portrait within of
a man strikingly handsome and intelligent-looking, but bearing unmistakable
signs upon his features of his African descent.
“That is John Hebron, of Atlanta,” said the lady, “and a nobler man never
walked the earth. I cut myself off from my race in order to wed him, but never
once while he lived did I for an instant regret it. It was our misfortune that our
only child took after his people rather than mine. It is often so in such matches,
and little Lucy is darker far than ever her father was. But dark or fair, she is my
own dear little girlie, and her mother’s pet.” The little creature ran across at the
words and nestled up against the lady’s dress. “When I left her in America,” she
continued, “it was only because her health was weak, and the change might
have done her harm. She was given to the care of a faithful Scotch woman who
had once been our servant. Never for an instant did I dream of disowning her
as my child. But when chance threw you in my way, Jack, and I learned to love
you, I feared to tell you about my child. God forgive me, I feared that I should
lose you, and I had not the courage to tell you. I had to choose between you,
and in my weakness I turned away from my own little girl. For three years I
have kept her existence a secret from you, but I heard from the nurse, and I
knew that all was well with her. At last, however, there came an overwhelming
desire to see the child once more. I struggled against it, but in vain. Though I
knew the danger, I determined to have the child over, if it were but for a few
weeks. I sent a hundred pounds to the nurse, and I gave her instructions about
this cottage, so that she might come as a neighbor, without my appearing to be
in any way connected with her. I pushed my precautions so far as to order her
to keep the child in the house during the daytime, and to cover up her little face
and hands so that even those who might see her at the window should not
gossip about there being a black child in the neighborhood. If I had been less
cautious I might have been more wise, but I was half crazy with fear that you
should learn the truth.
“It was you who told me first that the cottage was occupied. I should have
waited for the morning, but I could not sleep for excitement, and so at last I
slipped out, knowing how difficult it is to awake you. But you saw me go, and
that was the beginning of my troubles. Next day you had my secret at your
mercy, but you nobly refrained from pursuing your advantage. Three days later,
however, the nurse and child only just escaped from the back door as you
rushed in at the front one. And now to-night you at last know all, and I ask you
what is to become of us, my child and me?” She clasped her hands and waited
for an answer.
It was a long ten minutes before Grant Munro broke the silence, and when his
answer came it was one of which I love to think. He lifted the little child, kissed
her, and then, still carrying her, he held his other hand out to his wife and
turned towards the door.
“We can talk it over more comfortably at home,” said he. “I am not a very
good man, Effie, but I think that I am a better one than you have given me
credit for being.”
Holmes and I followed them down the lane, and my friend plucked at my
sleeve as we came out.
“I think,” said he, “that we shall be of more use in London than in Norbury.”
Not another word did he say of the case until late that night, when he was
turning away, with his lighted candle, for his bedroom.
“Watson,” said he, “if it should ever strike you that I am getting a little over-
confident in my powers, or giving less pains to a case than it deserves, kindly
whisper ‘Norbury’ in my ear, and I shall be infinitely obliged to you.”
For three months after taking over the practice I was kept very closely at work,
and saw little of my friend Sherlock Holmes, for I was too busy to visit Baker
Street, and he seldom went anywhere himself save upon professional business.
I was surprised, therefore, when, one morning in June, as I sat reading the
British Medical Journal after breakfast, I heard a ring at the bell, followed by
the high, somewhat strident tones of my old companion’s voice.
“Ah, my dear Watson,” said he, striding into the room, “I am very delighted to
see you! I trust that Mrs. Watson has entirely recovered from all the little
excitements connected with our adventure of the Sign of Four.”
“Thank you, we are both very well,” said I, shaking him warmly by the hand.
“And I hope, also,” he continued, sitting down in the rocking-chair, “that the
cares of medical practice have not entirely obliterated the interest which you
used to take in our little deductive problems.”
“On the contrary,” I answered, “it was only last night that I was looking over
my old notes, and classifying some of our past results.”
“Not at all. I should wish nothing better than to have some more of such
experiences.”
“Ha! Nothing could be better,” said Holmes, leaning back in his chair and
looking keenly at me from under his half closed lids. “I perceive that you have
been unwell lately. Summer colds are always a little trying.”
“I was confined to the house by a severe chill for three days last week. I
thought, however, that I had cast off every trace of it.”
“Certainly.”
I glanced down at the new patent leathers which I was wearing. “How on
earth—” I began, but Holmes answered my question before it was asked.
“Your slippers are new,” he said. “You could not have had them more than a
few weeks. The soles which you are at this moment presenting to me are
slightly scorched. For a moment I thought they might have got wet and been
burned in the drying. But near the instep there is a small circular wafer of paper
with the shopman’s hieroglyphics upon it. Damp would of course have
removed this. You had, then, been sitting with your feet outstretched to the
fire, which a man would hardly do even in so wet a June as this if he were in his
full health.”
Like all Holmes’s reasoning the thing seemed simplicity itself when it was once
explained. He read the thought upon my features, and his smile had a tinge of
bitterness.
“I am afraid that I rather give myself away when I explain,” said he. “Results
without causes are much more impressive. You are ready to come to
Birmingham, then?”
“You shall hear it all in the train. My client is outside in a four-wheeler. Can
you come at once?”
“Just the same as mine. Both have been ever since the houses were built.”
“By the steps, my boy. Yours are worn three inches deeper than his. But this
gentleman in the cab is my client, Mr. Hall Pycroft. Allow me to introduce you
to him. Whip your horse up, cabby, for we have only just time to catch our
train.”
The man whom I found myself facing was a well built, fresh-complexioned
young fellow, with a frank, honest face and a slight, crisp, yellow mustache. He
wore a very shiny top hat and a neat suit of sober black, which made him look
what he was—a smart young City man, of the class who have been labeled
cockneys, but who give us our crack volunteer regiments, and who turn out
more fine athletes and sportsmen than any body of men in these islands. His
round, ruddy face was naturally full of cheeriness, but the corners of his mouth
seemed to me to be pulled down in a half-comical distress. It was not, however,
until we were all in a first-class carriage and well started upon our journey to
Birmingham that I was able to learn what the trouble was which had driven
him to Sherlock Holmes.
“We have a clear run here of seventy minutes,” Holmes remarked. “I want you,
Mr. Hall Pycroft, to tell my friend your very interesting experience exactly as
you have told it to me, or with more detail if possible. It will be of use to me to
hear the succession of events again. It is a case, Watson, which may prove to
have something in it, or may prove to have nothing, but which, at least,
presents those unusual and outré features which are as dear to you as they are
to me. Now, Mr. Pycroft, I shall not interrupt you again.”
“The worst of the story is,” said he, “that I show myself up as such a
confounded fool. Of course it may work out all right, and I don’t see that I
could have done otherwise; but if I have lost my crib and get nothing in
exchange I shall feel what a soft Johnnie I have been. I’m not very good at
telling a story, Dr. Watson, but it is like this with me:
“At last I saw a vacancy at Mawson & Williams’s, the great stock-broking firm
in Lombard Street. I dare say E. C. Is not much in your line, but I can tell you
that this is about the richest house in London. The advertisement was to be
answered by letter only. I sent in my testimonial and application, but without
the least hope of getting it. Back came an answer by return, saying that if I
would appear next Monday I might take over my new duties at once, provided
that my appearance was satisfactory. No one knows how these things are
worked. Some people say that the manager just plunges his hand into the heap
and takes the first that comes. Anyhow it was my innings that time, and I don’t
ever wish to feel better pleased. The screw was a pound a week rise, and the
duties just about the same as at Coxon’s.
“And now I come to the queer part of the business. I was in diggings out
Hampstead way, 17 Potter’s Terrace. Well, I was sitting doing a smoke that
very evening after I had been promised the appointment, when up came my
landlady with a card which had ‘Arthur Pinner, Financial Agent,’ printed upon
it. I had never heard the name before and could not imagine what he wanted
with me; but, of course, I asked her to show him up. In he walked, a middle-
sized, dark-haired, dark-eyed, black-bearded man, with a touch of the Sheeny
about his nose. He had a brisk kind of way with him and spoke sharply, like a
man who knew the value of time.”
“‘Yes, sir.’
“‘Quite so.’
“‘Well,’ said he, ‘the fact is that I have heard some really extraordinary stories
about your financial ability. You remember Parker, who used to be Coxon’s
manager? He can never say enough about it.’
“Of course I was pleased to hear this. I had always been pretty sharp in the
office, but I had never dreamed that I was talked about in the City in this
fashion.
“‘Have you kept in touch with the market while you have been out of work?’
he asked.
“‘Now that shows real application!’ he cried. ‘That is the way to prosper! You
won’t mind my testing you, will you? Let me see. How are Ayrshires?’
“‘A hundred and six and a quarter to a hundred and five and seven-eighths.’
“‘Seven to seven-and-six.’
“‘Wonderful!’ he cried, with his hands up. ‘This quite fits in with all that I had
heard. My boy, my boy, you are very much too good to be a clerk at Mawson’s!’
“This outburst rather astonished me, as you can think. ‘Well,’ said I, ‘other
people don’t think quite so much of me as you seem to do, Mr. Pinner. I had a
hard enough fight to get this berth, and I am very glad to have it.’
“‘Pooh, man; you should soar above it. You are not in your true sphere. Now,
I’ll tell you how it stands with me. What I have to offer is little enough when
measured by your ability, but when compared with Mawson’s, it’s light to dark.
Let me see. When do you go to Mawson’s?’
“‘On Monday.’
“‘Ha, ha! I think I would risk a little sporting flutter that you don’t go there at
all.’
“‘Not go to Mawson’s?’
“‘No, sir. By that day you will be the business manager of the Franco-Midland
Hardware Company, Limited, with a hundred and thirty-four branches in the
towns and villages of France, not counting one in Brussels and one in San
Remo.’
“‘Very likely not. It has been kept very quiet, for the capital was all privately
subscribed, and it’s too good a thing to let the public into. My brother, Harry
Pinner, is promoter, and joins the board after allotment as managing director.
He knew I was in the swim down here, and asked me to pick up a good man
cheap. A young, pushing man with plenty of snap about him. Parker spoke of
you, and that brought me here to-night. We can only offer you a beggarly five
hundred to start with.’
“‘Only that at the beginning; but you are to have an overriding commission of
one per cent on all business done by your agents, and you may take my word
for it that this will come to more than your salary.’
“My head buzzed, and I could hardly sit still in my chair. But suddenly a little
chill of doubt came upon me.
“‘I must be frank with you,’ said I. ‘Mawson only gives me two hundred, but
Mawson is safe. Now, really, I know so little about your company that—’
“‘Ah, smart, smart!’ he cried, in a kind of ecstasy of delight. ‘You are the very
man for us. You are not to be talked over, and quite right, too. Now, here’s a
note for a hundred pounds, and if you think that we can do business you may
just slip it into your pocket as an advance upon your salary.’
“‘That is very handsome,’ said I. ‘When should I take over my new duties?’
“‘Not at all, my boy. You have only got your deserts. There are one or two
small things—mere formalities—which I must arrange with you. You have a bit
of paper beside you there. Kindly write upon it “I am perfectly willing to act as
business manager to the Franco-Midland Hardware Company, Limited, at a
minimum salary of L500.”’
“I had forgotten all about Mawson’s in my joy. ‘I’ll write and resign,’ said I.
“‘Precisely what I don’t want you to do. I had a row over you with Mawson’s
manager. I had gone up to ask him about you, and he was very offensive;
accused me of coaxing you away from the service of the firm, and that sort of
thing. At last I fairly lost my temper. “If you want good men you should pay
them a good price,” said I.’
“‘He would rather have our small price than your big one,’ said he.
“‘I’ll lay you a fiver,’ said I, ‘that when he has my offer you’ll never so much as
hear from him again.’
“‘Done!’ said he. ‘We picked him out of the gutter, and he won’t leave us so
easily.’ Those were his very words.”
“‘The impudent scoundrel!’ I cried. ‘I’ve never so much as seen him in my life.
Why should I consider him in any way? I shall certainly not write if you would
rather I didn’t.’
“‘Good! That’s a promise,’ said he, rising from his chair. ‘Well, I’m delighted to
have got so good a man for my brother. Here’s your advance of a hundred
pounds, and here is the letter. Make a note of the address, 126b Corporation
Street, and remember that one o’clock to-morrow is your appointment. Good-
night; and may you have all the fortune that you deserve!’
“That’s just about all that passed between us, as near as I can remember. You
can imagine, Dr. Watson, how pleased I was at such an extraordinary bit of
good fortune. I sat up half the night hugging myself over it, and next day I was
off to Birmingham in a train that would take me in plenty time for my
appointment. I took my things to a hotel in New Street, and then I made my
way to the address which had been given me.
“It was a quarter of an hour before my time, but I thought that would make no
difference. 126b was a passage between two large shops, which led to a winding
stone stair, from which there were many flats, let as offices to companies or
professional men. The names of the occupants were painted at the bottom on
the wall, but there was no such name as the Franco-Midland Hardware
Company, Limited. I stood for a few minutes with my heart in my boots,
wondering whether the whole thing was an elaborate hoax or not, when up
came a man and addressed me. He was very like the chap I had seen the night
before, the same figure and voice, but he was clean shaven and his hair was
lighter.
“‘Yes,’ said I.
“‘Oh! I was expecting you, but you are a trifle before your time. I had a note
from my brother this morning in which he sang your praises very loudly.’
“‘I was just looking for the offices when you came.
“‘We have not got our name up yet, for we only secured these temporary
premises last week. Come up with me, and we will talk the matter over.’
“I followed him to the top of a very lofty stair, and there, right under the slates,
were a couple of empty, dusty little rooms, uncarpeted and uncurtained, into
which he led me. I had thought of a great office with shining tables and rows of
clerks, such as I was used to, and I dare say I stared rather straight at the two
deal chairs and one little table, which, with a ledger and a waste paper basket,
made up the whole furniture.
“‘You seem to have made a vast impression upon my brother Arthur,’ said he;
‘and I know that he is a pretty shrewd judge. He swears by London, you know;
and I by Birmingham; but this time I shall follow his advice. Pray consider
yourself definitely engaged.”
“‘How?’
“‘This is a directory of Paris,’ said he, ‘with the trades after the names of the
people. I want you to take it home with you, and to mark off all the hardware
sellers, with their addresses. It would be of the greatest use to me to have
them.’
“‘Not reliable ones. Their system is different from ours. Stick at it, and let me
have the lists by Monday, at twelve. Good-day, Mr. Pycroft. If you continue to
show zeal and intelligence you will find the company a good master.’
“I went back to the hotel with the big book under my arm, and with very
conflicting feelings in my breast. On the one hand, I was definitely engaged and
had a hundred pounds in my pocket; on the other, the look of the offices, the
absence of name on the wall, and other of the points which would strike a
business man had left a bad impression as to the position of my employers.
However, come what might, I had my money, so I settled down to my task. All
Sunday I was kept hard at work, and yet by Monday I had only got as far as H.
I went round to my employer, found him in the same dismantled kind of room,
and was told to keep at it until Wednesday, and then come again. On
Wednesday it was still unfinished, so I hammered away until Friday—that is,
yesterday. Then I brought it round to Mr. Harry Pinner.
“‘Thank you very much,’ said he; ‘I fear that I underrated the difficulty of the
task. This list will be of very material assistance to me.’
“‘And now,’ said he, ‘I want you to make a list of the furniture shops, for they
all sell crockery.’
“‘Very good.’
“‘And you can come up to-morrow evening, at seven, and let me know how
you are getting on. Don’t overwork yourself. A couple of hours at Day’s Music
Hall in the evening would do you no harm after your labors.’ He laughed as he
spoke, and I saw with a thrill that his second tooth upon the left-hand side had
been very badly stuffed with gold.”
Sherlock Holmes rubbed his hands with delight, and I stared with astonishment
at our client.
“You may well look surprised, Dr. Watson; but it is this way,” said he: “When I
was speaking to the other chap in London, at the time that he laughed at my
not going to Mawson’s, I happened to notice that his tooth was stuffed in this
very identical fashion. The glint of the gold in each case caught my eye, you see.
When I put that with the voice and figure being the same, and only those
things altered which might be changed by a razor or a wig, I could not doubt
that it was the same man. Of course you expect two brothers to be alike, but
not that they should have the same tooth stuffed in the same way. He bowed
me out, and I found myself in the street, hardly knowing whether I was on my
head or my heels. Back I went to my hotel, put my head in a basin of cold
water, and tried to think it out. Why had he sent me from London to
Birmingham? Why had he got there before me? And why had he written a
letter from himself to himself? It was altogether too much for me, and I could
make no sense of it. And then suddenly it struck me that what was dark to me
might be very light to Mr. Sherlock Holmes. I had just time to get up to town
by the night train to see him this morning, and to bring you both back with me
to Birmingham.”
There was a pause after the stock-broker’s clerk had concluded his surprising
experience. Then Sherlock Holmes cocked his eye at me, leaning back on the
cushions with a pleased and yet critical face, like a connoisseur who has just
taken his first sip of a comet vintage.
“Rather fine, Watson, is it not?” said he. “There are points in it which please
me. I think that you will agree with me that an interview with Mr. Arthur Harry
Pinner in the temporary offices of the Franco-Midland Hardware Company,
Limited, would be a rather interesting experience for both of us.”
“Quite so, of course,” said Holmes. “I should like to have a look at the
gentleman, and see if I can make anything of his little game. What qualities
have you, my friend, which would make your services so valuable? or is it
possible that—” He began biting his nails and staring blankly out of the
window, and we hardly drew another word from him until we were in New
Street.
At seven o’clock that evening we were walking, the three of us, down
Corporation Street to the company’s offices.
“It is no use our being at all before our time,” said our client. “He only comes
there to see me, apparently, for the place is deserted up to the very hour he
names.”
“By Jove, I told you so!” cried the clerk. “That’s he walking ahead of us there.”
He pointed to a smallish, dark, well-dressed man who was bustling along the
other side of the road. As we watched him he looked across at a boy who was
bawling out the latest edition of the evening paper, and running over among
the cabs and busses, he bought one from him. Then, clutching it in his hand, he
vanished through a door-way.
“There he goes!” cried Hall Pycroft. “These are the company’s offices into
which he has gone. Come with me, and I’ll fix it up as easily as possible.”
Following his lead, we ascended five stories, until we found ourselves outside a
half-opened door, at which our client tapped. A voice within bade us enter, and
we entered a bare, unfurnished room such as Hall Pycroft had described. At the
single table sat the man whom we had seen in the street, with his evening paper
spread out in front of him, and as he looked up at us it seemed to me that I had
never looked upon a face which bore such marks of grief, and of something
beyond grief—of a horror such as comes to few men in a lifetime. His brow
glistened with perspiration, his cheeks were of the dull, dead white of a fish’s
belly, and his eyes were wild and staring. He looked at his clerk as though he
failed to recognize him, and I could see by the astonishment depicted upon our
conductor’s face that this was by no means the usual appearance of his
employer.
“Yes, I am not very well,” answered the other, making obvious efforts to pull
himself together, and licking his dry lips before he spoke. “Who are these
gentlemen whom you have brought with you?”
“One is Mr. Harris, of Bermondsey, and the other is Mr. Price, of this town,”
said our clerk, glibly. “They are friends of mine and gentlemen of experience,
but they have been out of a place for some little time, and they hoped that
perhaps you might find an opening for them in the company’s employment.”
“Very possibly! Very possibly!” cried Mr. Pinner with a ghastly smile. “Yes, I
have no doubt that we shall be able to do something for you. What is your
particular line, Mr. Harris?”
“Ah yes, we shall want something of the sort. And you, Mr. Price?”
“A clerk,” said I.
“I have every hope that the company may accommodate you. I will let you
know about it as soon as we come to any conclusion. And now I beg that you
will go. For God’s sake leave me to myself!”
These last words were shot out of him, as though the constraint which he was
evidently setting upon himself had suddenly and utterly burst asunder. Holmes
and I glanced at each other, and Hall Pycroft took a step towards the table.
“Certainly, Mr. Pycroft, certainly,” the other resumed in a calmer tone. “You
may wait here a moment; and there is no reason why your friends should not
wait with you. I will be entirely at your service in three minutes, if I might
trespass upon your patience so far.” He rose with a very courteous air, and,
bowing to us, he passed out through a door at the farther end of the room,
which he closed behind him.
“What now?” whispered Holmes. “Is he giving us the slip?”
“Why so?”
“There is no exit?”
“None.”
“Is it furnished?”
Holmes shook his head. “He did not turn pale. He was pale when we entered
the room,” said he. “It is just possible that—”
His words were interrupted by a sharp rat-tat from the direction of the inner
door.
“What the deuce is he knocking at his own door for?” cried the clerk.
Again and much louder came the rat-tat-tat. We all gazed expectantly at the
closed door. Glancing at Holmes, I saw his face turn rigid, and he leaned
forward in intense excitement. Then suddenly came a low guggling, gargling
sound, and a brisk drumming upon woodwork. Holmes sprang frantically
across the room and pushed at the door. It was fastened on the inner side.
Following his example, we threw ourselves upon it with all our weight. One
hinge snapped, then the other, and down came the door with a crash. Rushing
over it, we found ourselves in the inner room. It was empty.
But it was only for a moment that we were at fault. At one corner, the corner
nearest the room which we had left, there was a second door. Holmes sprang
to it and pulled it open. A coat and waistcoat were lying on the floor, and from
a hook behind the door, with his own braces round his neck, was hanging the
managing director of the Franco-Midland Hardware Company. His knees were
drawn up, his head hung at a dreadful angle to his body, and the clatter of his
heels against the door made the noise which had broken in upon our
conversation. In an instant I had caught him round the waist, and held him up
while Holmes and Pycroft untied the elastic bands which had disappeared
between the livid creases of skin. Then we carried him into the other room,
where he lay with a clay-colored face, puffing his purple lips in and out with
every breath—a dreadful wreck of all that he had been but five minutes before.
I stooped over him and examined him. His pulse was feeble and intermittent,
but his breathing grew longer, and there was a little shivering of his eyelids,
which showed a thin white slit of ball beneath.
“It has been touch and go with him,” said I, “but he’ll live now. Just open that
window, and hand me the water carafe.” I undid his collar, poured the cold
water over his face, and raised and sank his arms until he drew a long, natural
breath. “It’s only a question of time now,” said I, as I turned away from him.
Holmes stood by the table, with his hands deep in his trouser’s pockets and his
chin upon his breast.
“I suppose we ought to call the police in now,” said he. “And yet I confess that
I’d like to give them a complete case when they come.”
“It’s a blessed mystery to me,” cried Pycroft, scratching his head. “Whatever
they wanted to bring me all the way up here for, and then—”
“Pooh! All that is clear enough,” said Holmes impatiently. “It is this last sudden
move.”
“Oh surely if you consider the events at first they can only point to one
conclusion.”
“Well, the whole thing hinges upon two points. The first is the making of
Pycroft write a declaration by which he entered the service of this preposterous
company. Do you not see how very suggestive that is?”
“Well, why did they want him to do it? Not as a business matter, for these
arrangements are usually verbal, and there was no earthly business reason why
this should be an exception. Don’t you see, my young friend, that they were
very anxious to obtain a specimen of your handwriting, and had no other way
of doing it?”
“And why?”
“Quite so. Why? When we answer that we have made some progress with our
little problem. Why? There can be only one adequate reason. Some one wanted
to learn to imitate your writing, and had to procure a specimen of it first. And
now if we pass on to the second point we find that each throws light upon the
other. That point is the request made by Pinner that you should not resign your
place, but should leave the manager of this important business in the full
expectation that a Mr. Hall Pycroft, whom he had never seen, was about to
enter the office upon the Monday morning.”
“My God!” cried our client, “what a blind beetle I have been!”
“Now you see the point about the handwriting. Suppose that some one turned
up in your place who wrote a completely different hand from that in which you
had applied for the vacancy, of course the game would have been up. But in
the interval the rogue had learned to imitate you, and his position was therefore
secure, as I presume that nobody in the office had ever set eyes upon you.”
“Well, that is pretty clear also. There are evidently only two of them in it. The
other is impersonating you at the office. This one acted as your engager, and
then found that he could not find you an employer without admitting a third
person into his plot. That he was most unwilling to do. He changed his
appearance as far as he could, and trusted that the likeness, which you could
not fail to observe, would be put down to a family resemblance. But for the
happy chance of the gold stuffing, your suspicions would probably never have
been aroused.”
Hall Pycroft shook his clinched hands in the air. “Good Lord!” he cried, “while
I have been fooled in this way, what has this other Hall Pycroft been doing at
Mawson’s? What should we do, Mr. Holmes? Tell me what to do.”
“Ah yes, they keep a permanent guard there on account of the value of the
securities that they hold. I remember hearing it talked of in the City.”
“Very good; we shall wire to him, and see if all is well, and if a clerk of your
name is working there. That is clear enough; but what is not so clear is why at
sight of us one of the rogues should instantly walk out of the room and hang
himself.”
“The paper!” croaked a voice behind us. The man was sitting up, blanched and
ghastly, with returning reason in his eyes, and hands which rubbed nervously at
the broad red band which still encircled his throat.
“The paper! Of course!” yelled Holmes, in a paroxysm of excitement. “Idiot
that I was! I thought so much of our visit that the paper never entered my head
for an instant. To be sure, the secret must be there.” He flattened it out upon
the table, and a cry of triumph burst from his lips. “Look at this, Watson,” he
cried. “It is a London paper, an early edition of the Evening Standard. Here is
what we want. Look at the headlines: ‘Crime in the City. Murder at Mawson &
Williams’s. Gigantic attempted Robbery. Capture of the Criminal.’ Here,
Watson, we are all equally anxious to hear it, so kindly read it aloud to us.”
It appeared from its position in the paper to have been the one event of
importance in town, and the account of it ran in this way:
“A desperate attempt at robbery, culminating in the death of one man and the
capture of the criminal, occurred this afternoon in the City. For some time
back Mawson & Williams, the famous financial house, have been the guardians
of securities which amount in the aggregate to a sum of considerably over a
million sterling. So conscious was the manager of the responsibility which
devolved upon him in consequence of the great interests at stake that safes of
the very latest construction have been employed, and an armed watchman has
been left day and night in the building. It appears that last week a new clerk
named Hall Pycroft was engaged by the firm. This person appears to have been
none other that Beddington, the famous forger and cracksman, who, with his
brother, had only recently emerged from a five years’ spell of penal servitude.
By some means, which are not yet clear, he succeeded in winning, under a false
name, this official position in the office, which he utilized in order to obtain
moulding of various locks, and a thorough knowledge of the position of the
strong room and the safes.
“Well, we may save the police some little trouble in that direction,” said
Holmes, glancing at the haggard figure huddled up by the window. “Human
nature is a strange mixture, Watson. You see that even a villain and murderer
can inspire such affection that his brother turns to suicide when he learns that
his neck is forfeited. However, we have no choice as to our action. The doctor
and I will remain on guard, Mr. Pycroft, if you will have the kindness to step
out for the police.”
“I have some papers here,” said my friend Sherlock Holmes, as we sat one
winter’s night on either side of the fire, “which I really think, Watson, that it
would be worth your while to glance over. These are the documents in the
extraordinary case of the Gloria Scott, and this is the message which struck
Justice of the Peace Trevor dead with horror when he read it.”
He had picked from a drawer a little tarnished cylinder, and, undoing the tape,
he handed me a short note scrawled upon a half-sheet of slate-gray paper.
“The supply of game for London is going steadily up,” it ran. “Head-keeper
Hudson, we believe, has been now told to receive all orders for fly-paper and
for preservation of your hen-pheasant’s life.”
“I cannot see how such a message as this could inspire horror. It seems to me
to be rather grotesque than otherwise.”
“Very likely. Yet the fact remains that the reader, who was a fine, robust old
man, was knocked clean down by it as if it had been the butt end of a pistol.”
“You arouse my curiosity,” said I. “But why did you say just now that there
were very particular reasons why I should study this case?”
I had often endeavored to elicit from my companion what had first turned his
mind in the direction of criminal research, but had never caught him before in
a communicative humor. Now he sat forward in this arm-chair and spread out
the documents upon his knees. Then he lit his pipe and sat for some time
smoking and turning them over.
“You never heard me talk of Victor Trevor?” he asked. “He was the only friend
I made during the two years I was at college. I was never a very sociable fellow,
Watson, always rather fond of moping in my rooms and working out my own
little methods of thought, so that I never mixed much with the men of my year.
Bar fencing and boxing I had few athletic tastes, and then my line of study was
quite distinct from that of the other fellows, so that we had no points of
contact at all. Trevor was the only man I knew, and that only through the
accident of his bull terrier freezing on to my ankle one morning as I went down
to chapel.
“It was a prosaic way of forming a friendship, but it was effective. I was laid by
the heels for ten days, but Trevor used to come in to inquire after me. At first it
was only a minute’s chat, but soon his visits lengthened, and before the end of
the term we were close friends. He was a hearty, full-blooded fellow, full of
spirits and energy, the very opposite to me in most respects, but we had some
subjects in common, and it was a bond of union when I found that he was as
friendless as I. Finally, he invited me down to his father’s place at Donnithorpe,
in Norfolk, and I accepted his hospitality for a month of the long vacation.
“Old Trevor was evidently a man of some wealth and consideration, a J.P., and
a landed proprietor. Donnithorpe is a little hamlet just to the north of
Langmere, in the country of the Broads. The house was an old-fashioned,
wide-spread, oak-beamed brick building, with a fine lime-lined avenue leading
up to it. There was excellent wild-duck shooting in the fens, remarkably good
fishing, a small but select library, taken over, as I understood, from a former
occupant, and a tolerable cook, so that he would be a fastidious man who could
not put in a pleasant month there.
“Trevor senior was a widower, and my friend his only son.
“There had been a daughter, I heard, but she had died of diphtheria while on a
visit to Birmingham. The father interested me extremely. He was a man of little
culture, but with a considerable amount of rude strength, both physically and
mentally. He knew hardly any books, but he had traveled far, had seen much of
the world. And had remembered all that he had learned. In person he was a
thick-set, burly man with a shock of grizzled hair, a brown, weather-beaten
face, and blue eyes which were keen to the verge of fierceness. Yet he had a
reputation for kindness and charity on the country-side, and was noted for the
leniency of his sentences from the bench.
“One evening, shortly after my arrival, we were sitting over a glass of port after
dinner, when young Trevor began to talk about those habits of observation and
inference which I had already formed into a system, although I had not yet
appreciated the part which they were to play in my life. The old man evidently
thought that his son was exaggerating in his description of one or two trivial
feats which I had performed.
“‘I fear there is not very much,’ I answered; ‘I might suggest that you have gone
about in fear of some personal attack within the last twelvemonth.’
“The laugh faded from his lips, and he stared at me in great surprise.
“‘Well, that’s true enough,’ said he. ‘You know, Victor,’ turning to his son,
‘when we broke up that poaching gang they swore to knife us, and Sir Edward
Holly has actually been attacked. I’ve always been on my guard since then,
though I have no idea how you know it.’
“‘You have a very handsome stick,’ I answered. ‘By the inscription I observed
that you had not had it more than a year. But you have taken some pains to
bore the head of it and pour melted lead into the hole so as to make it a
formidable weapon. I argued that you would not take such precautions unless
you had some danger to fear.’
“‘Right again. How did you know it? Is my nose knocked a little out of the
straight?’
“‘No,’ said I. ‘It is your ears. They have the peculiar flattening and thickening
which marks the boxing man.’
“‘Anything else?’
“‘Right again.’
“‘Quite true.’
“‘And you have been most intimately associated with some one whose initials
were J. A., and whom you afterwards were eager to entirely forget.’
“Mr. Trevor stood slowly up, fixed his large blue eyes upon me with a strange
wild stare, and then pitched forward, with his face among the nutshells which
strewed the cloth, in a dead faint.
“You can imagine, Watson, how shocked both his son and I were. His attack
did not last long, however, for when we undid his collar, and sprinkled the
water from one of the finger-glasses over his face, he gave a gasp or two and
sat up.
“‘Ah, boys,’ said he, forcing a smile, ‘I hope I haven’t frightened you. Strong as
I look, there is a weak place in my heart, and it does not take much to knock
me over. I don’t know how you manage this, Mr. Holmes, but it seems to me
that all the detectives of fact and of fancy would be children in your hands.
That’s your line of life, sir, and you may take the word of a man who has seen
something of the world.’
“And that recommendation, with the exaggerated estimate of my ability with
which he prefaced it, was, if you will believe me, Watson, the very first thing
which ever made me feel that a profession might be made out of what had up
to that time been the merest hobby. At the moment, however, I was too much
concerned at the sudden illness of my host to think of anything else.
“‘Well, you certainly touched upon rather a tender point. Might I ask how you
know, and how much you know?’ He spoke now in a half-jesting fashion, but a
look of terror still lurked at the back of his eyes.
“‘It is simplicity itself,’ said I. ‘When you bared your arm to draw that fish into
the boat I saw that J. A. Had been tattooed in the bend of the elbow. The
letters were still legible, but it was perfectly clear from their blurred appearance,
and from the staining of the skin round them, that efforts had been made to
obliterate them. It was obvious, then, that those initials had once been very
familiar to you, and that you had afterwards wished to forget them.’
“What an eye you have!” he cried, with a sigh of relief. ‘It is just as you say. But
we won’t talk of it. Of all ghosts the ghosts of our old lovers are the worst.
Come into the billiard-room and have a quiet cigar.’
“From that day, amid all his cordiality, there was always a touch of suspicion in
Mr. Trevor’s manner towards me. Even his son remarked it. ‘You’ve given the
governor such a turn,’ said he, ‘that he’ll never be sure again of what you know
and what you don’t know.’ He did not mean to show it, I am sure, but it was so
strongly in his mind that it peeped out at every action. At last I became so
convinced that I was causing him uneasiness that I drew my visit to a close. On
the very day, however, before I left, and incident occurred which proved in the
sequel to be of importance.
“We were sitting out upon the lawn on garden chairs, the three of us, basking
in the sun and admiring the view across the Broads, when a maid came out to
say that there was a man at the door who wanted to see Mr. Trevor.
“‘Show him round here.’ An instant afterwards there appeared a little wizened
fellow with a cringing manner and a shambling style of walking. He wore an
open jacket, with a splotch of tar on the sleeve, a red-and-black check shirt,
dungaree trousers, and heavy boots badly worn. His face was thin and brown
and crafty, with a perpetual smile upon it, which showed an irregular line of
yellow teeth, and his crinkled hands were half closed in a way that is distinctive
of sailors. As he came slouching across the lawn I heard Mr. Trevor make a
sort of hiccoughing noise in his throat, and jumping out of his chair, he ran
into the house. He was back in a moment, and I smelt a strong reek of brandy
as he passed me.
“The sailor stood looking at him with puckered eyes, and with the same loose-
lipped smile upon his face.
“‘Why, dear me, it is surely Hudson,’ said Mr. Trevor in a tone of surprise.
“‘Hudson it is, sir,’ said the seaman. ‘Why, it’s thirty year and more since I saw
you last. Here you are in your house, and me still picking my salt meat out of
the harness cask.’
“‘Tut, you will find that I have not forgotten old times,’ cried Mr. Trevor, and,
walking towards the sailor, he said something in a low voice. ‘Go into the
kitchen,’ he continued out loud, ‘and you will get food and drink. I have no
doubt that I shall find you a situation.’
“‘Thank you, sir,’ said the seaman, touching his fore-lock. ‘I’m just off a two-
yearer in an eight-knot tramp, short-handed at that, and I wants a rest. I
thought I’d get it either with Mr. Beddoes or with you.’
“‘Bless you, sir, I know where all my old friends are,’ said the fellow with a
sinister smile, and he slouched off after the maid to the kitchen. Mr. Trevor
mumbled something to us about having been shipmate with the man when he
was going back to the diggings, and then, leaving us on the lawn, he went
indoors. An hour later, when we entered the house, we found him stretched
dead drunk upon the dining-room sofa. The whole incident left a most ugly
impression upon my mind, and I was not sorry next day to leave Donnithorpe
behind me, for I felt that my presence must be a source of embarrassment to
my friend.
“All this occurred during the first month of the long vacation. I went up to my
London rooms, where I spent seven weeks working out a few experiments in
organic chemistry. One day, however, when the autumn was far advanced and
the vacation drawing to a close, I received a telegram from my friend imploring
me to return to Donnithorpe, and saying that he was in great need of my advice
and assistance. Of course I dropped everything and set out for the North once
more.
“He met me with the dog-cart at the station, and I saw at a glance that the last
two months had been very trying ones for him. He had grown thin and
careworn, and had lost the loud, cheery manner for which he had been
remarkable.
“‘Apoplexy. Nervous shock, He’s been on the verge all day. I doubt if we shall
find him alive.’
“‘Ah, that is the point. Jump in and we can talk it over while we drive. You
remember that fellow who came upon the evening before you left us?’
“‘Perfectly.’
“‘Do you know who it was that we let into the house that day?’
“‘Yes, it was the devil himself. We have not had a peaceful hour since—not
one. The governor has never held up his head from that evening, and now the
life has been crushed out of him and his heart broken, all through this accursed
Hudson.’
“‘Ah, that is what I would give so much to know. The kindly, charitable, good
old governor—how could he have fallen into the clutches of such a ruffian! But
I am so glad that you have come, Holmes. I trust very much to your judgment
and discretion, and I know that you will advise me for the best.’
“We were dashing along the smooth white country road, with the long stretch
of the Broads in front of us glimmering in the red light of the setting sun. From
a grove upon our left I could already see the high chimneys and the flag-staff
which marked the squire’s dwelling.
“‘My father made the fellow gardener,’ said my companion, ‘and then, as that
did not satisfy him, he was promoted to be butler. The house seemed to be at
his mercy, and he wandered about and did what he chose in it. The maids
complained of his drunken habits and his vile language. The dad raised their
wages all round to recompense them for the annoyance. The fellow would take
the boat and my father’s best gun and treat himself to little shooting trips. And
all this with such a sneering, leering, insolent face that I would have knocked
him down twenty times over if he had been a man of my own age. I tell you,
Holmes, I have had to keep a tight hold upon myself all this time; and now I
am asking myself whether, if I had let myself go a little more, I might not have
been a wiser man.
“‘Well, matters went from bad to worse with us, and this animal Hudson
became more and more intrusive, until at last, on making some insolent reply
to my father in my presence one day, I took him by the shoulders and turned
him out of the room. He slunk away with a livid face and two venomous eyes
which uttered more threats than his tongue could do. I don’t know what passed
between the poor dad and him after that, but the dad came to me next day and
asked me whether I would mind apologizing to Hudson. I refused, as you can
imagine, and asked my father how he could allow such a wretch to take such
liberties with himself and his household.
“‘“Ah, my boy,” said he, “it is all very well to talk, but you don’t know how I
am placed. But you shall know, Victor. I’ll see that you shall know, come what
may. You wouldn’t believe harm of your poor old father, would you, lad?” He
was very much moved, and shut himself up in the study all day, where I could
see through the window that he was writing busily.
“‘“I’ve had enough of Norfolk,” said he. “I’ll run down to Mr. Beddoes in
Hampshire. He’ll be as glad to see me as you were, I dare say.”
“‘“You’re not going away in an unkind spirit, Hudson, I hope,” said my father,
with a tameness which made my blood boil.
“‘“Victor, you will acknowledge that you have used this worthy fellow rather
roughly,” said the dad, turning to me.
“‘“On the contrary, I think that we have both shown extraordinary patience
towards him,” I answered.
“‘“Oh, you do, do you?” he snarls. “Very good, mate. We’ll see about that!”
“‘He slouched out of the room, and half an hour afterwards left the house,
leaving my father in a state of pitiable nervousness. Night after night I heard
him pacing his room, and it was just as he was recovering his confidence that
the blow did at last fall.’
“‘You horrify me, Trevor!’ I cried. ‘What then could have been in this letter to
cause so dreadful a result?’
“‘Nothing. There lies the inexplicable part of it. The message was absurd and
trivial. Ah, my God, it is as I feared!’
“As he spoke we came round the curve of the avenue, and saw in the fading
light that every blind in the house had been drawn down. As we dashed up to
the door, my friend’s face convulsed with grief, a gentleman in black emerged
from it.
“‘Only that the papers were in the back drawer of the Japanese cabinet.’
“My friend ascended with the doctor to the chamber of death, while I remained
in the study, turning the whole matter over and over in my head, and feeling as
sombre as ever I had done in my life. What was the past of this Trevor, pugilist,
traveler, and gold-digger, and how had he placed himself in the power of this
acid-faced seaman? Why, too, should he faint at an allusion to the half-effaced
initials upon his arm, and die of fright when he had a letter from Fordingham?
Then I remembered that Fordingham was in Hampshire, and that this Mr.
Beddoes, whom the seaman had gone to visit and presumably to blackmail, had
also been mentioned as living in Hampshire. The letter, then, might either
come from Hudson, the seaman, saying that he had betrayed the guilty secret
which appeared to exist, or it might come from Beddoes, warning an old
confederate that such a betrayal was imminent. So far it seemed clear enough.
But then how could this letter be trivial and grotesque, as describe by the son?
He must have misread it. If so, it must have been one of those ingenious secret
codes which mean one thing while they seem to mean another. I must see this
letter. If there were a hidden meaning in it, I was confident that I could pluck it
forth. For an hour I sat pondering over it in the gloom, until at last a weeping
maid brought in a lamp, and close at her heels came my friend Trevor, pale but
composed, with these very papers which lie upon my knee held in his grasp. He
sat down opposite to me, drew the lamp to the edge of the table, and handed
me a short note scribbled, as you see, upon a single sheet of gray paper. ‘The
supply of game for London is going steadily up,’ it ran. ‘Head-keeper Hudson,
we believe, has been now told to receive all orders for fly-paper and for
preservation of your hen-pheasant’s life.’
“I dare say my face looked as bewildered as yours did just now when first I read
this message. Then I reread it very carefully. It was evidently as I had thought,
and some secret meaning must lie buried in this strange combination of words.
Or could it be that there was a prearranged significance to such phrases as ‘fly-
paper’ and ‘hen-pheasant’? Such a meaning would be arbitrary and could not be
deduced in any way. And yet I was loath to believe that this was the case, and
the presence of the word Hudson seemed to show that the subject of the
message was as I had guessed, and that it was from Beddoes rather than the
sailor. I tried it backwards, but the combination ‘life pheasant’s hen’ was not
encouraging. Then I tried alternate words, but neither ‘the of for’ nor ‘supply
game London’ promised to throw any light upon it.
“And then in an instant the key of the riddle was in my hands, and I saw that
every third word, beginning with the first, would give a message which might
well drive old Trevor to despair.
“It was short and terse, the warning, as I now read it to my companion:
“‘The game is up. Hudson has told all. Fly for your life.’
“Victor Trevor sank his face into his shaking hands. ‘It must be that, I
suppose,’ said he. “This is worse than death, for it means disgrace as well. But
what is the meaning of these “head-keepers” and “hen-pheasants”?’
“‘It means nothing to the message, but it might mean a good deal to us if we
had no other means of discovering the sender. You see that he has begun by
writing “The...game...is,” and so on. Afterwards he had, to fulfill the
prearranged cipher, to fill in any two words in each space. He would naturally
use the first words which came to his mind, and if there were so many which
referred to sport among them, you may be tolerably sure that he is either an
ardent shot or interested in breeding. Do you know anything of this Beddoes?’
“‘Why, now that you mention it,’ said he, ‘I remember that my poor father used
to have an invitation from him to shoot over his preserves every autumn.’
“‘Then it is undoubtedly from him that the note comes,’ said I. ‘It only remains
for us to find out what this secret was which the sailor Hudson seems to have
held over the heads of these two wealthy and respected men.’
“‘Alas, Holmes, I fear that it is one of sin and shame!’ cried my friend. ‘But
from you I shall have no secrets. Here is the statement which was drawn up by
my father when he knew that the danger from Hudson had become imminent.
I found it in the Japanese cabinet, as he told the doctor. Take it and read it to
me, for I have neither the strength nor the courage to do it myself.’
“These are the very papers, Watson, which he handed to me, and I will read
them to you, as I read them in the old study that night to him. They are
endorsed outside, as you see, ‘Some particulars of the voyage of the bark Gloria
Scott, from her leaving Falmouth on the 8th October, 1855, to her destruction
in N. Lat. 15 degrees 20’, W. Long. 25 degrees 14’ on Nov. 6th.’ It is in the
form of a letter, and runs in this way:
“‘My dear, dear son, now that approaching disgrace begins to darken the
closing years of my life, I can write with all truth and honesty that it is not the
terror of the law, it is not the loss of my position in the county, nor is it my fall
in the eyes of all who have known me, which cuts me to the heart; but it is the
thought that you should come to blush for me—you who love me and who
have seldom, I hope, had reason to do other than respect me. But if the blow
falls which is forever hanging over me, then I should wish you to read this, that
you may know straight from me how far I have been to blame. On the other
hand, if all should go well (which may kind God Almighty grant!), then if by
any chance this paper should be still undestroyed and should fall into your
hands, I conjure you, by all you hold sacred, by the memory of your dear
mother, and by the love which had been between us, to hurl it into the fire and
to never give one thought to it again.
“‘If then your eye goes on to read this line, I know that I shall already have
been exposed and dragged from my home, or as is more likely, for you know
that my heart is weak, by lying with my tongue sealed forever in death. In either
case the time for suppression is past, and every word which I tell you is the
naked truth, and this I swear as I hope for mercy.
“‘My name, dear lad, is not Trevor. I was James Armitage in my younger days,
and you can understand now the shock that it was to me a few weeks ago when
your college friend addressed me in words which seemed to imply that he had
surprised my secret. As Armitage it was that I entered a London banking-
house, and as Armitage I was convicted of breaking my country’s laws, and was
sentenced to transportation. Do not think very harshly of me, laddie. It was a
debt of honor, so called, which I had to pay, and I used money which was not
my own to do it, in the certainty that I could replace it before there could be
any possibility of its being missed. But the most dreadful ill-luck pursued me.
The money which I had reckoned upon never came to hand, and a premature
examination of accounts exposed my deficit. The case might have been dealt
leniently with, but the laws were more harshly administered thirty years ago
than now, and on my twenty-third birthday I found myself chained as a felon
with thirty-seven other convicts in ‘tween-decks of the bark Gloria Scott,
bound for Australia.
“‘It was the year ‘55 when the Crimean war was at its height, and the old
convict ships had been largely used as transports in the Black Sea. The
government was compelled, therefore, to use smaller and less suitable vessels
for sending out their prisoners. The Gloria Scott had been in the Chinese tea-
trade, but she was an old-fashioned, heavy-bowed, broad-beamed craft, and the
new clippers had cut her out. She was a five-hundred-ton boat; and besides her
thirty-eight jail-birds, she carried twenty-six of a crew, eighteen soldiers, a
captain, three mates, a doctor, a chaplain, and four warders. Nearly a hundred
souls were in her, all told, when we set sail from Falmouth.
“‘The partitions between the cells of the convicts, instead of being of thick oak,
as is usual in convict-ships, were quite thin and frail. The man next to me, upon
the aft side, was one whom I had particularly noticed when we were led down
the quay. He was a young man with a clear, hairless face, a long, thin nose, and
rather nut-cracker jaws. He carried his head very jauntily in the air, had a
swaggering style of walking, and was, above all else, remarkable for his
extraordinary height. I don’t think any of our heads would have come up to his
shoulder, and I am sure that he could not have measured less than six and a
half feet. It was strange among so many sad and weary faces to see one which
was full of energy and resolution. The sight of it was to me like a fire in a snow-
storm. I was glad, then, to find that he was my neighbor, and gladder still when,
in the dead of the night, I heard a whisper close to my ear, and found that he
had managed to cut an opening in the board which separated us.
“‘“Hullo, chummy!” said he, “what’s your name, and what are you here for?”
“‘I answered him, and asked in turn who I was talking with.
“‘“I’m Jack Prendergast,” said he, “and by God! You’ll learn to bless my name
before you’ve done with me.”
“‘I remembered hearing of his case, for it was one which had made an immense
sensation throughout the country some time before my own arrest. He was a
man of good family and of great ability, but of incurably vicious habits, who
had by an ingenious system of fraud obtained huge sums of money from the
leading London merchants.
“‘“No.”
“‘“Right between my finger and thumb,” he cried. “By God! I’ve got more
pounds to my name than you’ve hairs on your head. And if you’ve money, my
son, and know how to handle it and spread it, you can do anything. Now, you
don’t think it likely that a man who could do anything is going to wear his
breeches out sitting in the stinking hold of a rat-gutted, beetle-ridden, mouldy
old coffin of a Chin China coaster. No, sir, such a man will look after himself
and will look after his chums. You may lay to that! You hold on to him, and
you may kiss the book that he’ll haul you through.”
“‘That was his style of talk, and at first I thought it meant nothing; but after a
while, when he had tested me and sworn me in with all possible solemnity, he
let me understand that there really was a plot to gain command of the vessel. A
dozen of the prisoners had hatched it before they came aboard, Prendergast
was the leader, and his money was the motive power.
“‘“I’d a partner,” said he, “a rare good man, as true as a stock to a barrel. He’s
got the dibbs, he has, and where do you think he is at this moment? Why, he’s
the chaplain of this ship—the chaplain, no less! He came aboard with a black
coat, and his papers right, and money enough in his box to buy the thing right
up from keel to main-truck. The crew are his, body and soul. He could buy ‘em
at so much a gross with a cash discount, and he did it before ever they signed
on. He’s got two of the warders and Mereer, the second mate, and he’d get the
captain himself, if he thought him worth it.”
“‘“What do you think?” said he. “We’ll make the coats of some of these
soldiers redder than ever the tailor did.”
“‘“And so shall we be, my boy. There’s a brace of pistols for every mother’s
son of us, and if we can’t carry this ship, with the crew at our back, it’s time we
were all sent to a young misses’ boarding-school. You speak to your mate upon
the left to-night, and see if he is to be trusted.”
“‘I did so, and found my other neighbor to be a young fellow in much the same
position as myself, whose crime had been forgery. His name was Evans, but he
afterwards changed it, like myself, and he is now a rich and prosperous man in
the south of England. He was ready enough to join the conspiracy, as the only
means of saving ourselves, and before we had crossed the Bay there were only
two of the prisoners who were not in the secret. One of these was of weak
mind, and we did not dare to trust him, and the other was suffering from
jaundice, and could not be of any use to us.
“‘From the beginning there was really nothing to prevent us from taking
possession of the ship. The crew were a set of ruffians, specially picked for the
job. The sham chaplain came into our cells to exhort us, carrying a black bag,
supposed to be full of tracts, and so often did he come that by the third day we
had each stowed away at the foot of our beds a file, a brace of pistols, a pound
of powder, and twenty slugs. Two of the warders were agents of Prendergast,
and the second mate was his right-hand man. The captain, the two mates, two
warders Lieutenant Martin, his eighteen soldiers, and the doctor were all that
we had against us. Yet, safe as it was, we determined to neglect no precaution,
and to make our attack suddenly by night. It came, however, more quickly than
we expected, and in this way.
“‘One evening, about the third week after our start, the doctor had come down
to see one of the prisoners who was ill, and putting his hand down on the
bottom of his bunk he felt the outline of the pistols. If he had been silent he
might have blown the whole thing, but he was a nervous little chap, so he gave
a cry of surprise and turned so pale that the man knew what was up in an
instant and seized him. He was gagged before he could give the alarm, and tied
down upon the bed. He had unlocked the door that led to the deck, and we
were through it in a rush. The two sentries were shot down, and so was a
corporal who came running to see what was the matter. There were two more
soldiers at the door of the state-room, and their muskets seemed not to be
loaded, for they never fired upon us, and they were shot while trying to fix their
bayonets. Then we rushed on into the captain’s cabin, but as we pushed open
the door there was an explosion from within, and there he lay with his brains
smeared over the chart of the Atlantic which was pinned upon the table, while
the chaplain stood with a smoking pistol in his hand at his elbow. The two
mates had both been seized by the crew, and the whole business seemed to be
settled.
“‘The state-room was next the cabin, and we flocked in there and flopped
down on the settees, all speaking together, for we were just mad with the
feeling that we were free once more. There were lockers all round, and Wilson,
the sham chaplain, knocked one of them in, and pulled out a dozen of brown
sherry. We cracked off the necks of the bottles, poured the stuff out into
tumblers, and were just tossing them off, when in an instant without warning
there came the roar of muskets in our ears, and the saloon was so full of smoke
that we could not see across the table. When it cleared again the place was a
shambles. Wilson and eight others were wriggling on the top of each other on
the floor, and the blood and the brown sherry on that table turn me sick now
when I think of it. We were so cowed by the sight that I think we should have
given the job up if it had not been for Prendergast. He bellowed like a bull and
rushed for the door with all that were left alive at his heels. Out we ran, and
there on the poop were the lieutenant and ten of his men. The swing skylights
above the saloon table had been a bit open, and they had fired on us through
the slit. We got on them before they could load, and they stood to it like men;
but we had the upper hand of them, and in five minutes it was all over. My
God! Was there ever a slaughter-house like that ship! Prendergast was like a
raging devil, and he picked the soldiers up as if they had been children and
threw them overboard alive or dead. There was one sergeant that was horribly
wounded and yet kept on swimming for a surprising time, until some one in
mercy blew out his brains. When the fighting was over there was no one left of
our enemies except just the warders the mates, and the doctor.
“‘It was over them that the great quarrel arose. There were many of us who
were glad enough to win back our freedom, and yet who had no wish to have
murder on our souls. It was one thing to knock the soldiers over with their
muskets in their hands, and it was another to stand by while men were being
killed in cold blood. Eight of us, five convicts and three sailors, said that we
would not see it done. But there was no moving Prendergast and those who
were with him. Our only chance of safety lay in making a clean job of it, said
he, and he would not leave a tongue with power to wag in a witness-box. It
nearly came to our sharing the fate of the prisoners, but at last he said that if we
wished we might take a boat and go. We jumped at the offer, for we were
already sick of these bloodthirsty doings, and we saw that there would be worse
before it was done. We were given a suit of sailor togs each, a barrel of water,
two casks, one of junk and one of biscuits, and a compass. Prendergast threw
us over a chart, told us that we were shipwrecked mariners whose ship had
foundered in Lat. 15 degrees and Long 25 degrees west, and then cut the
painter and let us go.
“‘And now I come to the most surprising part of my story, my dear son. The
seamen had hauled the fore-yard aback during the rising, but now as we left
them they brought it square again, and as there was a light wind from the north
and east the bark began to draw slowly away from us. Our boat lay, rising and
falling, upon the long, smooth rollers, and Evans and I, who were the most
educated of the party, were sitting in the sheets working out our position and
planning what coast we should make for. It was a nice question, for the Cape
de Verdes were about five hundred miles to the north of us, and the African
coast about seven hundred to the east. On the whole, as the wind was coming
round to the north, we thought that Sierra Leone might be best, and turned our
head in that direction, the bark being at that time nearly hull down on our
starboard quarter. Suddenly as we looked at her we saw a dense black cloud of
smoke shoot up from her, which hung like a monstrous tree upon the sky line.
A few seconds later a roar like thunder burst upon our ears, and as the smoke
thinned away there was no sign left of the Gloria Scott. In an instant we swept
the boat’s head round again and pulled with all our strength for the place where
the haze still trailing over the water marked the scene of this catastrophe.
“‘It was a long hour before we reached it, and at first we feared that we had
come too late to save any one. A splintered boat and a number of crates and
fragments of spars rising and falling on the waves showed us where the vessel
had foundered; but there was no sign of life, and we had turned away in despair
when we heard a cry for help, and saw at some distance a piece of wreckage
with a man lying stretched across it. When we pulled him aboard the boat he
proved to be a young seaman of the name of Hudson, who was so burned and
exhausted that he could give us no account of what had happened until the
following morning.
“‘It seemed that after we had left, Prendergast and his gang had proceeded to
put to death the five remaining prisoners. The two warders had been shot and
thrown overboard, and so also had the third mate. Prendergast then descended
into the ‘tween-decks and with his own hands cut the throat of the unfortunate
surgeon. There only remained the first mate, who was a bold and active man.
When he saw the convict approaching him with the bloody knife in his hand he
kicked off his bonds, which he had somehow contrived to loosen, and rushing
down the deck he plunged into the after-hold. A dozen convicts, who
descended with their pistols in search of him, found him with a match-box in
his hand seated beside an open powder-barrel, which was one of a hundred
carried on board, and swearing that he would blow all hands up if he were in
any way molested. An instant later the explosion occurred, though Hudson
thought it was caused by the misdirected bullet of one of the convicts rather
than the mate’s match. Be the cause what it may, it was the end of the Gloria
Scott and of the rabble who held command of her.
“‘Such, in a few words, my dear boy, is the history of this terrible business in
which I was involved. Next day we were picked up by the brig Hotspur, bound
for Australia, whose captain found no difficulty in believing that we were the
survivors of a passenger ship which had foundered. The transport ship Gloria
Scott was set down by the Admiralty as being lost at sea, and no word has ever
leaked out as to her true fate. After an excellent voyage the Hotspur landed us
at Sydney, where Evans and I changed our names and made our way to the
diggings, where, among the crowds who were gathered from all nations, we had
no difficulty in losing our former identities. The rest I need not relate. We
prospered, we traveled, we came back as rich colonials to England, and we
bought country estates. For more than twenty years we have led peaceful and
useful lives, and we hoped that our past was forever buried. Imagine, then, my
feelings when in the seaman who came to us I recognized instantly the man
who had been picked off the wreck. He had tracked us down somehow, and
had set himself to live upon our fears. You will understand now how it was that
I strove to keep the peace with him, and you will in some measure sympathize
with me in the fears which fill me, now that he has gone from me to his other
victim with threats upon his tongue.’
“That was the narrative which I read that night to young Trevor, and I think,
Watson, that under the circumstances it was a dramatic one. The good fellow
was heart-broken at it, and went out to the Terai tea planting, where I hear that
he is doing well. As to the sailor and Beddoes, neither of them was ever heard
of again after that day on which the letter of warning was written. They both
disappeared utterly and completely. No complaint had been lodged with the
police, so that Beddoes had mistaken a threat for a deed. Hudson had been
seen lurking about, and it was believed by the police that he had done away
with Beddoes and had fled. For myself I believe that the truth was exactly the
opposite. I think that it is most probable that Beddoes, pushed to desperation
and believing himself to have been already betrayed, had revenged himself
upon Hudson, and had fled from the country with as much money as he could
lay his hands on. Those are the facts of the case, Doctor, and if they are of any
use to your collection, I am sure that they are very heartily at your service.”
Our chambers were always full of chemicals and of criminal relics which had a
way of wandering into unlikely positions, and of turning up in the butter-dish
or in even less desirable places. But his papers were my great crux. He had a
horror of destroying documents, especially those which were connected with
his past cases, and yet it was only once in every year or two that he would
muster energy to docket and arrange them; for, as I have mentioned
somewhere in these incoherent memoirs, the outbursts of passionate energy
when he performed the remarkable feats with which his name is associated
were followed by reactions of lethargy during which he would lie about with his
violin and his books, hardly moving save from the sofa to the table. Thus
month after month his papers accumulated, until every corner of the room was
stacked with bundles of manuscript which were on no account to be burned,
and which could not be put away save by their owner. One winter’s night, as
we sat together by the fire, I ventured to suggest to him that, as he had finished
pasting extracts into his common-place book, he might employ the next two
hours in making our room a little more habitable. He could not deny the justice
of my request, so with a rather rueful face he went off to his bedroom, from
which he returned presently pulling a large tin box behind him. This he placed
in the middle of the floor and, squatting down upon a stool in front of it, he
threw back the lid. I could see that it was already a third full of bundles of
paper tied up with red tape into separate packages.
“There are cases enough here, Watson,” said he, looking at me with
mischievous eyes. “I think that if you knew all that I had in this box you would
ask me to pull some out instead of putting others in.”
“These are the records of your early work, then?” I asked. “I have often wished
that I had notes of those cases.”
“Yes, my boy, these were all done prematurely before my biographer had come
to glorify me.” He lifted bundle after bundle in a tender, caressing sort of way.
“They are not all successes, Watson,” said he. “But there are some pretty little
problems among them. Here’s the record of the Tarleton murders, and the case
of Vamberry, the wine merchant, and the adventure of the old Russian woman,
and the singular affair of the aluminium crutch, as well as a full account of
Ricoletti of the club-foot, and his abominable wife. And here—ah, now, this
really is something a little recherché.”
He dived his arm down to the bottom of the chest, and brought up a small
wooden box with a sliding lid, such as children’s toys are kept in. From within
he produced a crumpled piece of paper, and old-fashioned brass key, a peg of
wood with a ball of string attached to it, and three rusty old disks of metal.
“Very curious, and the story that hangs round it will strike you as being more
curious still.”
Sherlock Holmes picked them up one by one, and laid them along the edge of
the table. Then he reseated himself in his chair and looked them over with a
gleam of satisfaction in his eyes.
“These,” said he, “are all that I have left to remind me of the adventure of the
Musgrave Ritual.”
I had heard him mention the case more than once, though I had never been
able to gather the details. “I should be so glad,” said I, “if you would give me
an account of it.”
“And leave the litter as it is?” he cried, mischievously. “Your tidiness won’t
bear much strain after all, Watson. But I should be glad that you should add
this case to your annals, for there are points in it which make it quite unique in
the criminal records of this or, I believe, of any other country. A collection of
my trifling achievements would certainly be incomplete which contained no
account of this very singular business.
“You may remember how the affair of the Gloria Scott, and my conversation
with the unhappy man whose fate I told you of, first turned my attention in the
direction of the profession which has become my life’s work. You see me now
when my name has become known far and wide, and when I am generally
recognized both by the public and by the official force as being a final court of
appeal in doubtful cases. Even when you knew me first, at the time of the affair
which you have commemorated in ‘A Study in Scarlet,’ I had already
established a considerable, though not a very lucrative, connection. You can
hardly realize, then, how difficult I found it at first, and how long I had to wait
before I succeeded in making any headway.
“When I first came up to London I had rooms in Montague Street, just round
the corner from the British Museum, and there I waited, filling in my too
abundant leisure time by studying all those branches of science which might
make me more efficient. Now and again cases came in my way, principally
through the introduction of old fellow-students, for during my last years at the
University there was a good deal of talk there about myself and my methods.
The third of these cases was that of the Musgrave Ritual, and it is to the interest
which was aroused by that singular chain of events, and the large issues which
proved to be at stake, that I trace my first stride towards the position which I
now hold.
“Reginald Musgrave had been in the same college as myself, and I had some
slight acquaintance with him. He was not generally popular among the
undergraduates, though it always seemed to me that what was set down as pride
was really an attempt to cover extreme natural diffidence. In appearance he was
a man of exceedingly aristocratic type, thin, high-nosed, and large-eyed, with
languid and yet courtly manners. He was indeed a scion of one of the very
oldest families in the kingdom, though his branch was a cadet one which had
separated from the northern Musgraves some time in the sixteenth century, and
had established itself in western Sussex, where the Manor House of Hurlstone
is perhaps the oldest inhabited building in the county. Something of his birth
place seemed to cling to the man, and I never looked at his pale, keen face or
the poise of his head without associating him with gray archways and mullioned
windows and all the venerable wreckage of a feudal keep. Once or twice we
drifted into talk, and I can remember that more than once he expressed a keen
interest in my methods of observation and inference.
“For four years I had seen nothing of him until one morning he walked into
my room in Montague Street. He had changed little, was dressed like a young
man of fashion—he was always a bit of a dandy—and preserved the same
quiet, suave manner which had formerly distinguished him.
“‘How has all gone with you Musgrave?’ I asked, after we had cordially shaken
hands.
“‘You probably heard of my poor father’s death,’ said he; ‘he was carried off
about two years ago. Since then I have of course had the Hurlstone estates to
manage, and as I am member for my district as well, my life has been a busy
one. But I understand, Holmes, that you are turning to practical ends those
powers with which you used to amaze us?’
“‘I am delighted to hear it, for your advice at present would be exceedingly
valuable to me. We have had some very strange doings at Hurlstone, and the
police have been able to throw no light upon the matter. It is really the most
extraordinary and inexplicable business.’
“You can imagine with what eagerness I listened to him, Watson, for the very
chance for which I had been panting during all those months of inaction
seemed to have come within my reach. In my inmost heart I believed that I
could succeed where others failed, and now I had the opportunity to test
myself.
“Reginald Musgrave sat down opposite to me, and lit the cigarette which I had
pushed towards him.
“‘You must know,’ said he, ‘that though I am a bachelor, I have to keep up a
considerable staff of servants at Hurlstone, for it is a rambling old place, and
takes a good deal of looking after. I preserve, too, and in the pheasant months I
usually have a house-party, so that it would not do to be short-handed.
Altogether there are eight maids, the cook, the butler, two footmen, and a boy.
The garden and the stables of course have a separate staff.
“‘Of these servants the one who had been longest in our service was Brunton
the butler. He was a young school-master out of place when he was first taken
up by my father, but he was a man of great energy and character, and he soon
became quite invaluable in the household. He was a well-grown, handsome
man, with a splendid forehead, and though he has been with us for twenty
years he cannot be more than forty now. With his personal advantages and his
extraordinary gifts—for he can speak several languages and play nearly every
musical instrument—it is wonderful that he should have been satisfied so long
in such a position, but I suppose that he was comfortable, and lacked energy to
make any change. The butler of Hurlstone is always a thing that is remembered
by all who visit us.
“‘But this paragon has one fault. He is a bit of a Don Juan, and you can
imagine that for a man like him it is not a very difficult part to play in a quiet
country district. When he was married it was all right, but since he has been a
widower we have had no end of trouble with him. A few months ago we were
in hopes that he was about to settle down again for he became engaged to
Rachel Howells, our second house-maid; but he has thrown her over since then
and taken up with Janet Tregellis, the daughter of the head game-keeper.
Rachel—who is a very good girl, but of an excitable Welsh temperament—had
a sharp touch of brain-fever, and goes about the house now—or did until
yesterday—like a black-eyed shadow of her former self. That was our first
drama at Hurlstone; but a second one came to drive it from our minds, and it
was prefaced by the disgrace and dismissal of butler Brunton.
“‘This was how it came about. I have said that the man was intelligent, and this
very intelligence has caused his ruin, for it seems to have led to an insatiable
curiosity about things which did not in the least concern him. I had no idea of
the lengths to which this would carry him, until the merest accident opened my
eyes to it.
“‘I have said that the house is a rambling one. One day last week—on
Thursday night, to be more exact—I found that I could not sleep, having
foolishly taken a cup of strong café noir after my dinner. After struggling
against it until two in the morning, I felt that it was quite hopeless, so I rose
and lit the candle with the intention of continuing a novel which I was reading.
The book, however, had been left in the billiard-room, so I pulled on my
dressing-gown and started off to get it.
“‘In order to reach the billiard-room I had to descend a flight of stairs and then
to cross the head of a passage which led to the library and the gun-room. You
can imagine my surprise when, as I looked down this corridor, I saw a glimmer
of light coming from the open door of the library. I had myself extinguished
the lamp and closed the door before coming to bed. Naturally my first thought
was of burglars. The corridors at Hurlstone have their walls largely decorated
with trophies of old weapons. From one of these I picked a battle-axe, and
then, leaving my candle behind me, I crept on tiptoe down the passage and
peeped in at the open door.
“‘Brunton, the butler, was in the library. He was sitting, fully dressed, in an
easy-chair, with a slip of paper which looked like a map upon his knee, and his
forehead sunk forward upon his hand in deep thought. I stood dumb with
astonishment, watching him from the darkness. A small taper on the edge of
the table shed a feeble light which sufficed to show me that he was fully
dressed. Suddenly, as I looked, he rose from his chair, and walking over to a
bureau at the side, he unlocked it and drew out one of the drawers. From this
he took a paper, and returning to his seat he flattened it out beside the taper on
the edge of the table, and began to study it with minute attention. My
indignation at this calm examination of our family documents overcame me so
far that I took a step forward, and Brunton, looking up, saw me standing in the
doorway. He sprang to his feet, his face turned livid with fear, and he thrust
into his breast the chart-like paper which he had been originally studying.
“‘“So!” said I. “This is how you repay the trust which we have reposed in you.
You will leave my service to-morrow.”
“‘He bowed with the look of a man who is utterly crushed, and slunk past me
without a word. The taper was still on the table, and by its light I glanced to see
what the paper was which Brunton had taken from the bureau. To my surprise
it was nothing of any importance at all, but simply a copy of the questions and
answers in the singular old observance called the Musgrave Ritual. It is a sort of
ceremony peculiar to our family, which each Musgrave for centuries past has
gone through on his coming of age—a thing of private interest, and perhaps of
some little importance to the archaeologist, like our own blazonings and
charges, but of no practical use whatever.’
“‘If you think it really necessary,’ he answered, with some hesitation. ‘To
continue my statement, however: I relocked the bureau, using the key which
Brunton had left, and I had turned to go when I was surprised to find that the
butler had returned, and was standing before me.
“‘“Mr. Musgrave, sir,” he cried, in a voice which was hoarse with emotion, “I
can’t bear disgrace, sir. I’ve always been proud above my station in life, and
disgrace would kill me. My blood will be on your head, sir—it will, indeed—if
you drive me to despair. If you cannot keep me after what has passed, then for
God’s sake let me give you notice and leave in a month, as if of my own free
will. I could stand that, Mr. Musgrave, but not to be cast out before all the folk
that I know so well.”
“‘“A week,” I repeated, “and you may consider yourself to have been very
leniently dealt with.”
“‘He crept away, his face sunk upon his breast, like a broken man, while I put
out the light and returned to my room.
“‘“For two days after this Brunton was most assiduous in his attention to his
duties. I made no allusion to what had passed, and waited with some curiosity
to see how he would cover his disgrace. On the third morning, however he did
not appear, as was his custom, after breakfast to receive my instructions for the
day. As I left the dining-room I happened to meet Rachel Howells, the maid. I
have told you that she had only recently recovered from an illness, and was
looking so wretchedly pale and wan that I remonstrated with her for being at
work.
“‘“You should be in bed,” I said. “Come back to your duties when you are
stronger.”
“‘“We will see what the doctor says,” I answered. “You must stop work now,
and when you go downstairs just say that I wish to see Brunton.”
“‘“He is gone. No one has seen him. He is not in his room. Oh, yes, he is gone,
he is gone!” She fell back against the wall with shriek after shriek of laughter,
while I, horrified at this sudden hysterical attack, rushed to the bell to summon
help. The girl was taken to her room, still screaming and sobbing, while I made
inquiries about Brunton. There was no doubt about it that he had disappeared.
His bed had not been slept in, he had been seen by no one since he had retired
to his room the night before, and yet it was difficult to see how he could have
left the house, as both windows and doors were found to be fastened in the
morning. His clothes, his watch, and even his money were in his room, but the
black suit which he usually wore was missing. His slippers, too, were gone, but
his boots were left behind. Where then could butler Brunton have gone in the
night, and what could have become of him now?
“‘Of course we searched the house from cellar to garret, but there was no trace
of him. It is, as I have said, a labyrinth of an old house, especially the original
wing, which is now practically uninhabited; but we ransacked every room and
cellar without discovering the least sign of the missing man. It was incredible to
me that he could have gone away leaving all his property behind him, and yet
where could he be? I called in the local police, but without success. Rain had
fallen on the night before and we examined the lawn and the paths all round
the house, but in vain. Matters were in this state, when a new development
quite drew our attention away from the original mystery.
“‘For two days Rachel Howells had been so ill, sometimes delirious, sometimes
hysterical, that a nurse had been employed to sit up with her at night. On the
third night after Brunton’s disappearance, the nurse, finding her patient
sleeping nicely, had dropped into a nap in the arm-chair, when she woke in the
early morning to find the bed empty, the window open, and no signs of the
invalid. I was instantly aroused, and, with the two footmen, started off at once
in search of the missing girl. It was not difficult to tell the direction which she
had taken, for, starting from under her window, we could follow her footmarks
easily across the lawn to the edge of the mere, where they vanished close to the
gravel path which leads out of the grounds. The lake there is eight feet deep,
and you can imagine our feelings when we saw that the trail of the poor
demented girl came to an end at the edge of it.
“‘Of course, we had the drags at once, and set to work to recover the remains,
but no trace of the body could we find. On the other hand, we brought to the
surface an object of a most unexpected kind. It was a linen bag which
contained within it a mass of old rusted and discolored metal and several dull-
colored pieces of pebble or glass. This strange find was all that we could get
from the mere, and, although we made every possible search and inquiry
yesterday, we know nothing of the fate either of Rachel Howells or of Richard
Brunton. The county police are at their wits’ end, and I have come up to you as
a last resource.’
“You can imagine, Watson, with what eagerness I listened to this extraordinary
sequence of events, and endeavored to piece them together, and to devise some
common thread upon which they might all hang. The butler was gone. The
maid was gone. The maid had loved the butler, but had afterwards had cause to
hate him. She was of Welsh blood, fiery and passionate. She had been terribly
excited immediately after his disappearance. She had flung into the lake a bag
containing some curious contents. These were all factors which had to be taken
into consideration, and yet none of them got quite to the heart of the matter.
What was the starting-point of this chain of events? There lay the end of this
tangled line.
“‘I must see that paper, Musgrave,’ said I, ‘which this butler of your thought it
worth his while to consult, even at the risk of the loss of his place.’
“‘It is rather an absurd business, this ritual of ours,’ he answered. ‘But it has at
least the saving grace of antiquity to excuse it. I have a copy of the questions
and answers here if you care to run your eye over them.’
“He handed me the very paper which I have here, Watson, and this is the
strange catechism to which each Musgrave had to submit when he came to
man’s estate. I will read you the questions and answers as they stand.
“‘North by ten and by ten, east by five and by five, south by two and by two,
west by one and by one, and so under.’
“‘The original has no date, but is in the spelling of the middle of the
seventeenth century,’ remarked Musgrave. ‘I am afraid, however, that it can be
of little help to you in solving this mystery.’
“‘At least,’ said I, ‘it gives us another mystery, and one which is even more
interesting than the first. It may be that the solution of the one may prove to be
the solution of the other. You will excuse me, Musgrave, if I say that your
butler appears to me to have been a very clever man, and to have had a clearer
insight than ten generations of his masters.’
“‘But to me it seems immensely practical, and I fancy that Brunton took the
same view. He had probably seen it before that night on which you caught
him.’
“‘It is very possible. We took no pains to hide it.’
“‘He simply wished, I should imagine, to refresh his memory upon that last
occasion. He had, as I understand, some sort of map or chart which he was
comparing with the manuscript, and which he thrust into his pocket when you
appeared.’
“‘That is true. But what could he have to do with this old family custom of
ours, and what does this rigmarole mean?’
“‘I don’t think that we should have much difficulty in determining that,’ said I;
‘with your permission we will take the first train down to Sussex, and go a little
more deeply into the matter upon the spot.’
“The same afternoon saw us both at Hurlstone. Possibly you have seen
pictures and read descriptions of the famous old building, so I will confine my
account of it to saying that it is built in the shape of an L, the long arm being
the more modern portion, and the shorter the ancient nucleus, from which the
other had developed. Over the low, heavily-lintelled door, in the centre of this
old part, is chiseled the date, 1607, but experts are agreed that the beams and
stone-work are really much older than this. The enormously thick walls and tiny
windows of this part had in the last century driven the family into building the
new wing, and the old one was used now as a store-house and a cellar, when it
was used at all. A splendid park with fine old timber surrounds the house, and
the lake, to which my client had referred, lay close to the avenue, about two
hundred yards from the building.
“I was already firmly convinced, Watson, that there were not three separate
mysteries here, but one only, and that if I could read the Musgrave Ritual aright
I should hold in my hand the clue which would lead me to the truth concerning
both the butler Brunton and the maid Howells. To that then I turned all my
energies. Why should this servant be so anxious to master this old formula?
Evidently because he saw something in it which had escaped all those
generations of country squires, and from which he expected some personal
advantage. What was it then, and how had it affected his fate?
“It was perfectly obvious to me, on reading the ritual, that the measurements
must refer to some spot to which the rest of the document alluded, and that if
we could find that spot, we should be in a fair way towards finding what the
secret was which the old Musgraves had thought it necessary to embalm in so
curious a fashion. There were two guides given us to start with, an oak and an
elm. As to the oak there could be no question at all. Right in front of the house,
upon the left-hand side of the drive, there stood a patriarch among oaks, one of
the most magnificent trees that I have ever seen.
“‘That was there when your ritual was drawn up,’ said I, as we drove past it.
“‘It was there at the Norman Conquest in all probability,’ he answered. ‘It has a
girth of twenty-three feet.’
“‘There used to be a very old one over yonder but it was struck by lightning ten
years ago, and we cut down the stump.’
“‘Oh, yes.’
“We had driven up in a dog-cart, and my client led me away at once, without
our entering the house, to the scar on the lawn where the elm had stood. It was
nearly midway between the oak and the house. My investigation seemed to be
progressing.
“‘I suppose it is impossible to find out how high the elm was?’ I asked.
“This was an unexpected piece of luck. My data were coming more quickly
than I could have reasonably hoped.
“‘Tell me,’ I asked, ‘did your butler ever ask you such a question?’
“This was excellent news, Watson, for it showed me that I was on the right
road. I looked up at the sun. It was low in the heavens, and I calculated that in
less than an hour it would lie just above the topmost branches of the old oak.
One condition mentioned in the Ritual would then be fulfilled. And the
shadow of the elm must mean the farther end of the shadow, otherwise the
trunk would have been chosen as the guide. I had, then, to find where the far
end of the shadow would fall when the sun was just clear of the oak.”
“That must have been difficult, Holmes, when the elm was no longer there.”
“Well, at least I knew that if Brunton could do it, I could also. Besides, there
was no real difficulty. I went with Musgrave to his study and whittled myself
this peg, to which I tied this long string with a knot at each yard. Then I took
two lengths of a fishing-rod, which came to just six feet, and I went back with
my client to where the elm had been. The sun was just grazing the top of the
oak. I fastened the rod on end, marked out the direction of the shadow, and
measured it. It was nine feet in length.
“Of course the calculation now was a simple one. If a rod of six feet threw a
shadow of nine, a tree of sixty-four feet would throw one of ninety-six, and the
line of the one would of course be the line of the other. I measured out the
distance, which brought me almost to the wall of the house, and I thrust a peg
into the spot. You can imagine my exultation, Watson, when within two inches
of my peg I saw a conical depression in the ground. I knew that it was the mark
made by Brunton in his measurements, and that I was still upon his trail.
“From this starting-point I proceeded to step, having first taken the cardinal
points by my pocket-compass. Ten steps with each foot took me along parallel
with the wall of the house, and again I marked my spot with a peg. Then I
carefully paced off five to the east and two to the south. It brought me to the
very threshold of the old door. Two steps to the west meant now that I was to
go two paces down the stone-flagged passage, and this was the place indicated
by the Ritual.
“Never have I felt such a cold chill of disappointment, Watson. For a moment
is seemed to me that there must be some radical mistake in my calculations.
The setting sun shone full upon the passage floor, and I could see that the old,
foot-worn gray stones with which it was paved were firmly cemented together,
and had certainly not been moved for many a long year. Brunton had not been
at work here. I tapped upon the floor, but it sounded the same all over, and
there was no sign of any crack or crevice. But, fortunately, Musgrave, who had
begun to appreciate the meaning of my proceedings, and who was now as
excited as myself, took out his manuscript to check my calculation.
“I had thought that it meant that we were to dig, but now, of course, I saw at
once that I was wrong. ‘There is a cellar under this then?’ I cried.
“‘Yes, and as old as the house. Down here, through this door.’
“We went down a winding stone stair, and my companion, striking a match, lit
a large lantern which stood on a barrel in the corner. In an instant it was
obvious that we had at last come upon the true place, and that we had not been
the only people to visit the spot recently.
“It had been used for the storage of wood, but the billets, which had evidently
been littered over the floor, were now piled at the sides, so as to leave a clear
space in the middle. In this space lay a large and heavy flagstone with a rusted
iron ring in the centre to which a thick shepherd’s-check muffler was attached.
“‘By Jove!’ cried my client. ‘That’s Brunton’s muffler. I have seen it on him,
and could swear to it. What has the villain been doing here?’
“A small chamber about seven feet deep and four feet square lay open to us. At
one side of this was a squat, brass-bound wooden box, the lid of which was
hinged upwards, with this curious old-fashioned key projecting from the lock.
It was furred outside by a thick layer of dust, and damp and worms had eaten
through the wood, so that a crop of livid fungi was growing on the inside of it.
Several discs of metal, old coins apparently, such as I hold here, were scattered
over the bottom of the box, but it contained nothing else.
“At the moment, however, we had no thought for the old chest, for our eyes
were riveted upon that which crouched beside it. It was the figure of a man,
clad in a suit of black, who squatted down upon his hams with his forehead
sunk upon the edge of the box and his two arms thrown out on each side of it.
The attitude had drawn all the stagnant blood to the face, and no man could
have recognized that distorted liver-colored countenance; but his height, his
dress, and his hair were all sufficient to show my client, when we had drawn the
body up, that it was indeed his missing butler. He had been dead some days,
but there was no wound or bruise upon his person to show how he had met his
dreadful end. When his body had been carried from the cellar we found
ourselves still confronted with a problem which was almost as formidable as
that with which we had started.
“You know my methods in such cases, Watson. I put myself in the man’s place
and, having first gauged his intelligence, I try to imagine how I should myself
have proceeded under the same circumstances. In this case the matter was
simplified by Brunton’s intelligence being quite first-rate, so that it was
unnecessary to make any allowance for the personal equation, as the
astronomers have dubbed it. He knew that something valuable was concealed.
He had spotted the place. He found that the stone which covered it was just
too heavy for a man to move unaided. What would he do next? He could not
get help from outside, even if he had some one whom he could trust, without
the unbarring of doors and considerable risk of detection. It was better, if he
could, to have his helpmate inside the house. But whom could he ask? This girl
had been devoted to him. A man always finds it hard to realize that he may
have finally lost a woman’s love, however badly he may have treated her. He
would try by a few attentions to make his peace with the girl Howells, and then
would engage her as his accomplice. Together they would come at night to the
cellar, and their united force would suffice to raise the stone. So far I could
follow their actions as if I had actually seen them.
“But for two of them, and one a woman, it must have been heavy work the
raising of that stone. A burly Sussex policeman and I had found it no light job.
What would they do to assist them? Probably what I should have done myself.
I rose and examined carefully the different billets of wood which were scattered
round the floor. Almost at once I came upon what I expected. One piece,
about three feet in length, had a very marked indentation at one end, while
several were flattened at the sides as if they had been compressed by some
considerable weight. Evidently, as they had dragged the stone up they had
thrust the chunks of wood into the chink, until at last, when the opening was
large enough to crawl through, they would hold it open by a billet placed
lengthwise, which might very well become indented at the lower end, since the
whole weight of the stone would press it down on to the edge of this other
slab. So far I was still on safe ground.
“And now how was I to proceed to reconstruct this midnight drama? Clearly,
only one could fit into the hole, and that one was Brunton. The girl must have
waited above. Brunton then unlocked the box, handed up the contents
presumably—since they were not to be found—and then—and then what
happened?
“What smouldering fire of vengeance had suddenly sprung into flame in this
passionate Celtic woman’s soul when she saw the man who had wronged her—
wronged her, perhaps, far more than we suspected—in her power? Was it a
chance that the wood had slipped, and that the stone had shut Brunton into
what had become his sepulchre? Had she only been guilty of silence as to his
fate? Or had some sudden blow from her hand dashed the support away and
sent the slab crashing down into its place? Be that as it might, I seemed to see
that woman’s figure still clutching at her treasure trove and flying wildly up the
winding stair, with her ears ringing perhaps with the muffled screams from
behind her and with the drumming of frenzied hands against the slab of stone
which was choking her faithless lover’s life out.
“Here was the secret of her blanched face, her shaken nerves, her peals of
hysterical laughter on the next morning. But what had been in the box? What
had she done with that? Of course, it must have been the old metal and pebbles
which my client had dragged from the mere. She had thrown them in there at
the first opportunity to remove the last trace of her crime.
“For twenty minutes I had sat motionless, thinking the matter out. Musgrave
still stood with a very pale face, swinging his lantern and peering down into the
hole.
“‘These are coins of Charles the First,’ said he, holding out the few which had
been in the box; ‘you see we were right in fixing our date for the Ritual.’
“‘We may find something else of Charles the First,’ I cried, as the probable
meaning of the first two questions of the Ritual broke suddenly upon me. ‘Let
me see the contents of the bag which you fished from the mere.’
“We ascended to his study, and he laid the debris before me. I could
understand his regarding it as of small importance when I looked at it, for the
metal was almost black and the stones lustreless and dull. I rubbed one of them
on my sleeve, however, and it glowed afterwards like a spark in the dark hollow
of my hand. The metal work was in the form of a double ring, but it had been
bent and twisted out of its original shape.
“‘You must bear in mind,’ said I, ‘that the royal party made head in England
even after the death of the king, and that when they at last fled they probably
left many of their most precious possessions buried behind them, with the
intention of returning for them in more peaceful times.’
“‘My ancestor, Sir Ralph Musgrave, was a prominent Cavalier and the right-
hand man of Charles the Second in his wanderings,’ said my friend.
“‘Ah, indeed!’ I answered. ‘Well now, I think that really should give us the last
link that we wanted. I must congratulate you on coming into the possession,
though in rather a tragic manner of a relic which is of great intrinsic value, but
of even greater importance as an historical curiosity.’
“‘It is nothing less than the ancient crown of the kings of England.’
“‘The crown!’
“‘Precisely. Consider what the Ritual says: How does it run? “Whose was it?”
“His who is gone.” That was after the execution of Charles. Then, “Who shall
have it?” “He who will come.” That was Charles the Second, whose advent was
already foreseen. There can, I think, be no doubt that this battered and
shapeless diadem once encircled the brows of the royal Stuarts.’
“‘Ah, that is a question that will take some time to answer.’ And with that I
sketched out to him the whole long chain of surmise and of proof which I had
constructed. The twilight had closed in and the moon was shining brightly in
the sky before my narrative was finished.
“‘And how was it then that Charles did not get his crown when he returned?’
asked Musgrave, pushing back the relic into its linen bag.
“‘Ah, there you lay your finger upon the one point which we shall probably
never be able to clear up. It is likely that the Musgrave who held the secret died
in the interval, and by some oversight left this guide to his descendant without
explaining the meaning of it. From that day to this it has been handed down
from father to son, until at last it came within reach of a man who tore its
secret out of it and lost his life in the venture.’
“And that’s the story of the Musgrave Ritual, Watson. They have the crown
down at Hurlstone—though they had some legal bother and a considerable
sum to pay before they were allowed to retain it. I am sure that if you
mentioned my name they would be happy to show it to you. Of the woman
nothing was ever heard, and the probability is that she got away out of England
and carried herself and the memory of her crime to some land beyond the
seas.”
It was some time before the health of my friend Mr. Sherlock Holmes
recovered from the strain caused by his immense exertions in the spring of ‘87.
The whole question of the Netherland-Sumatra Company and of the colossal
schemes of Baron Maupertuis are too recent in the minds of the public, and are
too intimately concerned with politics and finance to be fitting subjects for this
series of sketches. They led, however, in an indirect fashion to a singular and
complex problem which gave my friend an opportunity of demonstrating the
value of a fresh weapon among the many with which he waged his life-long
battle against crime.
On referring to my notes I see that it was upon the 14th of April that I received
a telegram from Lyons which informed me that Holmes was lying ill in the
Hotel Dulong. Within twenty-four hours I was in his sick-room, and was
relieved to find that there was nothing formidable in his symptoms. Even his
iron constitution, however, had broken down under the strain of an
investigation which had extended over two months, during which period he
had never worked less than fifteen hours a day, and had more than once, as he
assured me, kept to his task for five days at a stretch. Even the triumphant
issue of his labors could not save him from reaction after so terrible an
exertion, and at a time when Europe was ringing with his name and when his
room was literally ankle-deep with congratulatory telegrams I found him a prey
to the blackest depression. Even the knowledge that he had succeeded where
the police of three countries had failed, and that he had outmanoeuvred at
every point the most accomplished swindler in Europe, was insufficient to
rouse him from his nervous prostration.
Three days later we were back in Baker Street together; but it was evident that
my friend would be much the better for a change, and the thought of a week of
spring time in the country was full of attractions to me also. My old friend,
Colonel Hayter, who had come under my professional care in Afghanistan, had
now taken a house near Reigate in Surrey, and had frequently asked me to
come down to him upon a visit. On the last occasion he had remarked that if
my friend would only come with me he would be glad to extend his hospitality
to him also. A little diplomacy was needed, but when Holmes understood that
the establishment was a bachelor one, and that he would be allowed the fullest
freedom, he fell in with my plans and a week after our return from Lyons we
were under the Colonel’s roof. Hayter was a fine old soldier who had seen
much of the world, and he soon found, as I had expected, that Holmes and he
had much in common.
On the evening of our arrival we were sitting in the Colonel’s gun-room after
dinner, Holmes stretched upon the sofa, while Hayter and I looked over his
little armory of Eastern weapons.
“By the way,” said he suddenly, “I think I’ll take one of these pistols upstairs
with me in case we have an alarm.”
“None as yet. But the affair is a petty one, one of our little country crimes,
which must seem too small for your attention, Mr. Holmes, after this great
international affair.”
Holmes waved away the compliment, though his smile showed that it had
pleased him.
“I fancy not. The thieves ransacked the library and got very little for their pains.
The whole place was turned upside down, drawers burst open, and presses
ransacked, with the result that an odd volume of Pope’s ‘Homer,’ two plated
candlesticks, an ivory letter-weight, a small oak barometer, and a ball of twine
are all that have vanished.”
“Oh, the fellows evidently grabbed hold of everything they could get.”
“The county police ought to make something of that,” said he; “why, it is
surely obvious that—”
“You are here for a rest, my dear fellow. For Heaven’s sake don’t get started on
a new problem when your nerves are all in shreds.”
Holmes shrugged his shoulders with a glance of comic resignation towards the
Colonel, and the talk drifted away into less dangerous channels.
It was destined, however, that all my professional caution should be wasted, for
next morning the problem obtruded itself upon us in such a way that it was
impossible to ignore it, and our country visit took a turn which neither of us
could have anticipated. We were at breakfast when the Colonel’s butler rushed
in with all his propriety shaken out of him.
“Have you heard the news, sir?” he gasped. “At the Cunningham’s sir!”
“Murder!”
The Colonel whistled. “By Jove!” said he. “Who’s killed, then? The J.P. or his
son?”
“Neither, sir. It was William the coachman. Shot through the heart, sir, and
never spoke again.”
“The burglar, sir. He was off like a shot and got clean away. He’d just broke in
at the pantry window when William came on him and met his end in saving his
master’s property.”
“What time?”
“Ah, then, we’ll step over afterwards,” said the Colonel, coolly settling down to
his breakfast again. “It’s a baddish business,” he added when the butler had
gone; “he’s our leading man about here, is old Cunningham, and a very decent
fellow too. He’ll be cut up over this, for the man has been in his service for
years and was a good servant. It’s evidently the same villains who broke into
Acton’s.”
“Precisely.”
“Hum! It may prove the simplest matter in the world, but all the same at first
glance this is just a little curious, is it not? A gang of burglars acting in the
country might be expected to vary the scene of their operations, and not to
crack two cribs in the same district within a few days. When you spoke last
night of taking precautions I remember that it passed through my mind that
this was probably the last parish in England to which the thief or thieves would
be likely to turn their attention—which shows that I have still much to learn.”
“I fancy it’s some local practitioner,” said the Colonel. “In that case, of course,
Acton’s and Cunningham’s are just the places he would go for, since they are
far the largest about here.”
“And richest?”
“Well, they ought to be, but they’ve had a lawsuit for some years which has
sucked the blood out of both of them, I fancy. Old Acton has some claim on
half Cunningham’s estate, and the lawyers have been at it with both hands.”
“If it’s a local villain there should not be much difficulty in running him down,”
said Holmes with a yawn. “All right, Watson, I don’t intend to meddle.”
“Inspector Forrester, sir,” said the butler, throwing open the door.
The official, a smart, keen-faced young fellow, stepped into the room. “Good-
morning, Colonel,” said he; “I hope I don’t intrude, but we hear that Mr.
Holmes of Baker Street is here.”
The Colonel waved his hand towards my friend, and the Inspector bowed.
“We thought that perhaps you would care to step across, Mr. Holmes.”
“The fates are against you, Watson,” said he, laughing. “We were chatting
about the matter when you came in, Inspector. Perhaps you can let us have a
few details.” As he leaned back in his chair in the familiar attitude I knew that
the case was hopeless.
“We had no clue in the Acton affair. But here we have plenty to go on, and
there’s no doubt it is the same party in each case. The man was seen.”
“Ah!”
“Yes, sir. But he was off like a deer after the shot that killed poor William
Kirwan was fired. Mr. Cunningham saw him from the bedroom window, and
Mr. Alec Cunningham saw him from the back passage. It was quarter to twelve
when the alarm broke out. Mr. Cunningham had just got into bed, and Mr.
Alec was smoking a pipe in his dressing-gown. They both heard William the
coachman calling for help, and Mr. Alec ran down to see what was the matter.
The back door was open, and as he came to the foot of the stairs he saw two
men wrestling together outside. One of them fired a shot, the other dropped,
and the murderer rushed across the garden and over the hedge. Mr.
Cunningham, looking out of his bedroom, saw the fellow as he gained the road,
but lost sight of him at once. Mr. Alec stopped to see if he could help the dying
man, and so the villain got clean away. Beyond the fact that he was a middle-
sized man and dressed in some dark stuff, we have no personal clue; but we are
making energetic inquiries, and if he is a stranger we shall soon find him out.”
“What was this William doing there? Did he say anything before he died?”
“Not a word. He lives at the lodge with his mother, and as he was a very
faithful fellow we imagine that he walked up to the house with the intention of
seeing that all was right there. Of course this Acton business has put every one
on their guard. The robber must have just burst open the door—the lock has
been forced—when William came upon him.”
“She is very old and deaf, and we can get no information from her. The shock
has made her half-witted, but I understand that she was never very bright.
There is one very important circumstance, however. Look at this!”
He took a small piece of torn paper from a note-book and spread it out upon
his knee.
“This was found between the finger and thumb of the dead man. It appears to
be a fragment torn from a larger sheet. You will observe that the hour
mentioned upon it is the very time at which the poor fellow met his fate. You
see that his murderer might have torn the rest of the sheet from him or he
might have taken this fragment from the murderer. It reads almost as though it
were an appointment.”
“Your last remark,” said Holmes, presently, “as to the possibility of there being
an understanding between the burglar and the servant, and this being a note of
appointment from one to the other, is an ingenious and not entirely impossible
supposition. But this writing opens up—” He sank his head into his hands
again and remained for some minutes in the deepest thought. When he raised
his face again, I was surprised to see that his cheek was tinged with color, and
his eyes as bright as before his illness. He sprang to his feet with all his old
energy.
“I’ll tell you what,” said he, “I should like to have a quiet little glance into the
details of this case. There is something in it which fascinates me extremely. If
you will permit me, Colonel, I will leave my friend Watson and you, and I will
step round with the Inspector to test the truth of one or two little fancies of
mine. I will be with you again in half an hour.”
An hour and half had elapsed before the Inspector returned alone.
“Mr. Holmes is walking up and down in the field outside,” said he. “He wants
us all four to go up to the house together.”
“Yes, sir.”
“What for?”
The Inspector shrugged his shoulders. “I don’t quite know, sir. Between
ourselves, I think Mr. Holmes had not quite got over his illness yet. He’s been
behaving very queerly, and he is very much excited.”
“I don’t think you need alarm yourself,” said I. “I have usually found that there
was method in his madness.”
“Some folks might say there was madness in his method,” muttered the
Inspector. “But he’s all on fire to start, Colonel, so we had best go out if you
are ready.”
We found Holmes pacing up and down in the field, his chin sunk upon his
breast, and his hands thrust into his trousers pockets.
“The matter grows in interest,” said he. “Watson, your country-trip has been a
distinct success. I have had a charming morning.”
“You have been up to the scene of the crime, I understand,” said the Colonel.
“Yes; the Inspector and I have made quite a little reconnaissance together.”
“Any success?”
“Well, we have seen some very interesting things. I’ll tell you what we did as we
walk. First of all, we saw the body of this unfortunate man. He certainly died
from a revolver wound as reported.”
“Oh, it is as well to test everything. Our inspection was not wasted. We then
had an interview with Mr. Cunningham and his son, who were able to point out
the exact spot where the murderer had broken through the garden-hedge in his
flight. That was of great interest.”
“Naturally.”
“Then we had a look at this poor fellow’s mother. We could get no information
from her, however, as she is very old and feeble.”
“The conviction that the crime is a very peculiar one. Perhaps our visit now
may do something to make it less obscure. I think that we are both agreed,
Inspector that the fragment of paper in the dead man’s hand, bearing, as it
does, the very hour of his death written upon it, is of extreme importance.”
“I examined the ground carefully in the hope of finding it,” said the Inspector.
“It was torn out of the dead man’s hand. Why was some one so anxious to get
possession of it? Because it incriminated him. And what would he do with it?
Thrust it into his pocket, most likely, never noticing that a corner of it had been
left in the grip of the corpse. If we could get the rest of that sheet it is obvious
that we should have gone a long way towards solving the mystery.”
“Yes, but how can we get at the criminal’s pocket before we catch the
criminal?”
“Well, well, it was worth thinking over. Then there is another obvious point.
The note was sent to William. The man who wrote it could not have taken it;
otherwise, of course, he might have delivered his own message by word of
mouth. Who brought the note, then? Or did it come through the post?”
“I have made inquiries,” said the Inspector. “William received a letter by the
afternoon post yesterday. The envelope was destroyed by him.”
“Excellent!” cried Holmes, clapping the Inspector on the back. “You’ve seen
the postman. It is a pleasure to work with you. Well, here is the lodge, and if
you will come up, Colonel, I will show you the scene of the crime.”
We passed the pretty cottage where the murdered man had lived, and walked
up an oak-lined avenue to the fine old Queen Anne house, which bears the
date of Malplaquet upon the lintel of the door. Holmes and the Inspector led
us round it until we came to the side gate, which is separated by a stretch of
garden from the hedge which lines the road. A constable was standing at the
kitchen door.
“Throw the door open, officer,” said Holmes. “Now, it was on those stairs that
young Mr. Cunningham stood and saw the two men struggling just where we
are. Old Mr. Cunningham was at that window—the second on the left—and he
saw the fellow get away just to the left of that bush. Then Mr. Alec ran out and
knelt beside the wounded man. The ground is very hard, you see, and there are
no marks to guide us.” As he spoke two men came down the garden path, from
round the angle of the house. The one was an elderly man, with a strong, deep-
lined, heavy-eyed face; the other a dashing young fellow, whose bright, smiling
expression and showy dress were in strange contract with the business which
had brought us there.
“Still at it, then?” said he to Holmes. “I thought you Londoners were never at
fault. You don’t seem to be so very quick, after all.”
“You’ll want it,” said young Alec Cunningham. “Why, I don’t see that we have
any clue at all.”
“There’s only one,” answered the Inspector. “We thought that if we could only
find—Good heavens, Mr. Holmes! What is the matter?”
My poor friend’s face had suddenly assumed the most dreadful expression. His
eyes rolled upwards, his features writhed in agony, and with a suppressed groan
he dropped on his face upon the ground. Horrified at the suddenness and
severity of the attack, we carried him into the kitchen, where he lay back in a
large chair, and breathed heavily for some minutes. Finally, with a shamefaced
apology for his weakness, he rose once more.
“Watson would tell you that I have only just recovered from a severe illness,”
he explained. “I am liable to these sudden nervous attacks.”
“Well, since I am here, there is one point on which I should like to feel sure.
We can very easily verify it.”
“Well, it seems to me that it is just possible that the arrival of this poor fellow
William was not before, but after, the entrance of the burglary into the house.
You appear to take it for granted that, although the door was forced, the
robber never got in.”
“I fancy that is quite obvious,” said Mr. Cunningham, gravely. “Why, my son
Alec had not yet gone to bed, and he would certainly have heard any one
moving about.”
“Where was he sitting?”
“Undoubtedly.”
“There are some very singular points here,” said Holmes, smiling. “Is it not
extraordinary that a burglary—and a burglar who had had some previous
experience—should deliberately break into a house at a time when he could see
from the lights that two of the family were still afoot?”
“Well, of course, if the case were not an odd one we should not have been
driven to ask you for an explanation,” said young Mr. Alec. “But as to your
ideas that the man had robbed the house before William tackled him, I think it
a most absurd notion. Wouldn’t we have found the place disarranged, and
missed the things which he had taken?”
“It depends on what the things were,” said Holmes. “You must remember that
we are dealing with a burglar who is a very peculiar fellow, and who appears to
work on lines of his own. Look, for example, at the queer lot of things which
he took from Acton’s—what was it?—a ball of string, a letter-weight, and I
don’t know what other odds and ends.”
“Well, we are quite in your hands, Mr. Holmes,” said old Cunningham.
“Anything which you or the Inspector may suggest will most certainly be
done.”
“In the first place,” said Holmes, “I should like you to offer a reward—coming
from yourself, for the officials may take a little time before they would agree
upon the sum, and these things cannot be done too promptly. I have jotted
down the form here, if you would not mind signing it. Fifty pounds was quite
enough, I thought.”
“I would willingly give five hundred,” said the J.P., taking the slip of paper and
the pencil which Holmes handed to him. “This is not quite correct, however,”
he added, glancing over the document.
“You see you begin, ‘Whereas, at about a quarter to one on Tuesday morning
an attempt was made,’ and so on. It was at a quarter to twelve, as a matter of
fact.”
I was pained at the mistake, for I knew how keenly Holmes would feel any slip
of the kind. It was his specialty to be accurate as to fact, but his recent illness
had shaken him, and this one little incident was enough to show me that he was
still far from being himself. He was obviously embarrassed for an instant, while
the Inspector raised his eyebrows, and Alec Cunningham burst into a laugh.
The old gentleman corrected the mistake, however, and handed the paper back
to Holmes.
Holmes put the slip of paper carefully away into his pocket-book.
“And now,” said he, “it really would be a good thing that we should all go over
the house together and make certain that this rather erratic burglar did not,
after all, carry anything away with him.”
Before entering, Holmes made an examination of the door which had been
forced. It was evident that a chisel or strong knife had been thrust in, and the
lock forced back with it. We could see the marks in the wood where it had been
pushed in.
“Yes.”
“It is singular that on this particular night he should have been up. Now, I
should be very glad if you would have the kindness to show us over the house,
Mr. Cunningham.”
A stone-flagged passage, with the kitchens branching away from it, led by a
wooden staircase directly to the first floor of the house. It came out upon the
landing opposite to a second more ornamental stair which came up from the
front hall. Out of this landing opened the drawing-room and several bedrooms,
including those of Mr. Cunningham and his son. Holmes walked slowly, taking
keen note of the architecture of the house. I could tell from his expression that
he was on a hot scent, and yet I could not in the least imagine in what direction
his inferences were leading him.
“My good sir,” said Mr. Cunningham with some impatience, “this is surely very
unnecessary. That is my room at the end of the stairs, and my son’s is the one
beyond it. I leave it to your judgment whether it was possible for the thief to
have come up here without disturbing us.”
“You must try round and get on a fresh scent, I fancy,” said the son with a
rather malicious smile.
“Still, I must ask you to humor me a little further. I should like, for example, to
see how far the windows of the bedrooms command the front. This, I
understand is your son’s room”—he pushed open the door—”and that, I
presume, is the dressing-room in which he sat smoking when the alarm was
given. Where does the window of that look out to?” He stepped across the
bedroom, pushed open the door, and glanced round the other chamber.
“I hope that you are satisfied now?” said Mr. Cunningham, tartly.
The J. P. shrugged his shoulders, and led the way into his own chamber, which
was a plainly furnished and commonplace room. As we moved across it in the
direction of the window, Holmes fell back until he and I were the last of the
group. Near the foot of the bed stood a dish of oranges and a carafe of water.
As we passed it Holmes, to my unutterable astonishment, leaned over in front
of me and deliberately knocked the whole thing over. The glass smashed into a
thousand pieces and the fruit rolled about into every corner of the room.
“You’ve done it now, Watson,” said he, coolly. “A pretty mess you’ve made of
the carpet.”
I stooped in some confusion and began to pick up the fruit, understanding for
some reason my companion desired me to take the blame upon myself. The
others did the same, and set the table on its legs again.
“Wait here an instant,” said young Alec Cunningham. “The fellow is off his
head, in my opinion. Come with me, father, and see where he has got to!”
They rushed out of the room, leaving the Inspector, the Colonel, and me
staring at each other.
“‘Pon my word, I am inclined to agree with Master Alec,” said the official. “It
may be the effect of this illness, but it seems to me that—”
His words were cut short by a sudden scream of “Help! Help! Murder!” With a
thrill I recognized the voice of that of my friend. I rushed madly from the room
on to the landing. The cries, which had sunk down into a hoarse, inarticulate
shouting, came from the room which we had first visited. I dashed in, and on
into the dressing-room beyond. The two Cunninghams were bending over the
prostrate figure of Sherlock Holmes, the younger clutching his throat with both
hands, while the elder seemed to be twisting one of his wrists. In an instant the
three of us had torn them away from him, and Holmes staggered to his feet,
very pale and evidently greatly exhausted.
The Inspector stared about him in bewilderment. “Oh, come now, Mr.
Holmes,” said he at last, “I’m sure you don’t really mean to—”
“I have no alternative, Mr. Cunningham,” said he. “I trust that this may all
prove to be an absurd mistake, but you can see that—Ah, would you? Drop it!”
He struck out with his hand, and a revolver which the younger man was in the
act of cocking clattered down upon the floor.
“Keep that,” said Holmes, quietly putting his foot upon it; “you will find it
useful at the trial. But this is what we really wanted.” He held up a little
crumpled piece of paper.
“Precisely.”
“Where I was sure it must be. I’ll make the whole matter clear to you presently.
I think, Colonel, that you and Watson might return now, and I will be with you
again in an hour at the furthest. The Inspector and I must have a word with the
prisoners, but you will certainly see me back at luncheon time.”
Sherlock Holmes was as good as his word, for about one o’clock he rejoined us
in the Colonel’s smoking-room. He was accompanied by a little elderly
gentleman, who was introduced to me as the Mr. Acton whose house had been
the scene of the original burglary.
“On the contrary,” answered the Colonel, warmly, “I consider it the greatest
privilege to have been permitted to study your methods of working. I confess
that they quite surpass my expectations, and that I am utterly unable to account
for your result. I have not yet seen the vestige of a clue.”
“I am afraid that my explanation may disillusion you but it has always been my
habit to hide none of my methods, either from my friend Watson or from any
one who might take an intelligent interest in them. But, first, as I am rather
shaken by the knocking about which I had in the dressing-room, I think that I
shall help myself to a dash of your brandy, Colonel. My strength had been
rather tried of late.”
Sherlock Holmes laughed heartily. “We will come to that in its turn,” said he. “I
will lay an account of the case before you in its due order, showing you the
various points which guided me in my decision. Pray interrupt me if there is
any inference which is not perfectly clear to you.
“Before going into this, I would draw your attention to the fact that, if Alec
Cunningham’s narrative was correct, and if the assailant, after shooting William
Kirwan, had instantly fled, then it obviously could not be he who tore the
paper from the dead man’s hand. But if it was not he, it must have been Alec
Cunningham himself, for by the time that the old man had descended several
servants were upon the scene. The point is a simple one, but the Inspector had
overlooked it because he had started with the supposition that these county
magnates had had nothing to do with the matter. Now, I make a point of never
having any prejudices, and of following docilely wherever fact may lead me, and
so, in the very first stage of the investigation, I found myself looking a little
askance at the part which had been played by Mr. Alec Cunningham.
“And now I made a very careful examination of the corner of paper which the
Inspector had submitted to us. It was at once clear to me that it formed part of
a very remarkable document. Here it is. Do you not now observe something
very suggestive about it?”
“My dear sir,” cried Holmes, “there cannot be the least doubt in the world that
it has been written by two persons doing alternate words. When I draw your
attention to the strong t’s of ‘at’ and ‘to’, and ask you to compare them with the
weak ones of ‘quarter’ and ‘twelve,’ you will instantly recognize the fact. A very
brief analysis of these four words would enable you to say with the utmost
confidence that the ‘learn’ and the ‘maybe’ are written in the stronger hand, and
the ‘what’ in the weaker.”
“By Jove, it’s as clear as day!” cried the Colonel. “Why on earth should two
men write a letter in such a fashion?”
“Obviously the business was a bad one, and one of the men who distrusted the
other was determined that, whatever was done, each should have an equal hand
in it. Now, of the two men, it is clear that the one who wrote the ‘at’ and ‘to’
was the ringleader.”
“We might deduce it from the mere character of the one hand as compared
with the other. But we have more assured reasons than that for supposing it. If
you examine this scrap with attention you will come to the conclusion that the
man with the stronger hand wrote all his words first, leaving blanks for the
other to fill up. These blanks were not always sufficient, and you can see that
the second man had a squeeze to fit his ‘quarter’ in between the ‘at’ and the ‘to,’
showing that the latter were already written. The man who wrote all his words
first is undoubtedly the man who planned the affair.”
“Having got so far, my next step was, of course, to examine into the details of
the crime, and to see how far they would help us. I went up to the house with
the Inspector, and saw all that was to be seen. The wound upon the dead man
was, as I was able to determine with absolute confidence, fired from a revolver
at the distance of something over four yards. There was no powder-blackening
on the clothes. Evidently, therefore, Alec Cunningham had lied when he said
that the two men were struggling when the shot was fired. Again, both father
and son agreed as to the place where the man escaped into the road. At that
point, however, as it happens, there is a broadish ditch, moist at the bottom. As
there were no indications of bootmarks about this ditch, I was absolutely sure
not only that the Cunninghams had again lied, but that there had never been
any unknown man upon the scene at all.
“And now I have to consider the motive of this singular crime. To get at this, I
endeavored first of all to solve the reason of the original burglary at Mr.
Acton’s. I understood, from something which the Colonel told us, that a
lawsuit had been going on between you, Mr. Acton, and the Cunninghams. Of
course, it instantly occurred to me that they had broken into your library with
the intention of getting at some document which might be of importance in the
case.”
“Precisely so,” said Mr. Acton. “There can be no possible doubt as to their
intentions. I have the clearest claim upon half of their present estate, and if they
could have found a single paper—which, fortunately, was in the strong-box of
my solicitors—they would undoubtedly have crippled our case.”
“There you are,” said Holmes, smiling. “It was a dangerous, reckless attempt, in
which I seem to trace the influence of young Alec. Having found nothing they
tried to divert suspicion by making it appear to be an ordinary burglary, to
which end they carried off whatever they could lay their hands upon. That is all
clear enough, but there was much that was still obscure. What I wanted above
all was to get the missing part of that note. I was certain that Alec had torn it
out of the dead man’s hand, and almost certain that he must have thrust it into
the pocket of his dressing-gown. Where else could he have put it? The only
question was whether it was still there. It was worth an effort to find out, and
for that object we all went up to the house.
“The Cunninghams joined us, as you doubtless remember, outside the kitchen
door. It was, of course, of the very first importance that they should not be
reminded of the existence of this paper, otherwise they would naturally destroy
it without delay. The Inspector was about to tell them the importance which we
attached to it when, by the luckiest chance in the world, I tumbled down in a
sort of fit and so changed the conversation.
“Good heavens!” cried the Colonel, laughing, “do you mean to say all our
sympathy was wasted and your fit an imposture?”
“It is an art which is often useful,” said he. “When I recovered I managed, by a
device which had perhaps some little merit of ingenuity, to get old Cunningham
to write the word ‘twelve,’ so that I might compare it with the ‘twelve’ upon the
paper.”
“I had a little talk with old Cunningham afterwards as to the motive of the
crime. He was tractable enough, though his son was a perfect demon, ready to
blow out his own or anybody else’s brains if he could have got to his revolver.
When Cunningham saw that the case against him was so strong he lost all heart
and made a clean breast of everything. It seems that William had secretly
followed his two masters on the night when they made their raid upon Mr.
Acton’s, and having thus got them into his power, proceeded, under threats of
exposure, to levy blackmail upon them. Mr. Alec, however, was a dangerous
man to play games of that sort with. It was a stroke of positive genius on his
part to see in the burglary scare which was convulsing the country side an
opportunity of plausibly getting rid of the man whom he feared. William was
decoyed up and shot, and had they only got the whole of the note and paid a
little more attention to detail in the accessories, it is very possible that suspicion
might never have been aroused.”
If you will only come around to the east gate you it will
very much surprise you and be of the greatest service to you
and also to Annie Morrison. But say nothing to anyone upon
the matter.
“It is very much the sort of thing that I expected,” said he. “Of course, we do
not yet know what the relations may have been between Alec Cunningham,
William Kirwan, and Annie Morrison. The results shows that the trap was
skillfully baited. I am sure that you cannot fail to be delighted with the traces of
heredity shown in the p’s and in the tails of the g’s. The absence of the i-dots in
the old man’s writing is also most characteristic. Watson, I think our quiet rest
in the country has been a distinct success, and I shall certainly return much
invigorated to Baker Street to-morrow.”
One summer night, a few months after my marriage, I was seated by my own
hearth smoking a last pipe and nodding over a novel, for my day’s work had
been an exhausting one. My wife had already gone upstairs, and the sound of
the locking of the hall door some time before told me that the servants had
also retired. I had risen from my seat and was knocking out the ashes of my
pipe when I suddenly heard the clang of the bell.
I looked at the clock. It was a quarter to twelve. This could not be a visitor at
so late an hour. A patient, evidently, and possibly an all-night sitting. With a
wry face I went out into the hall and opened the door. To my astonishment it
was Sherlock Holmes who stood upon my step.
“Ah, Watson,” said he, “I hoped that I might not be too late to catch you.”
“You look surprised, and no wonder! Relieved, too, I fancy! Hum! You still
smoke the Arcadia mixture of your bachelor days then! There’s no mistaking
that fluffy ash upon your coat. It’s easy to tell that you have been accustomed
to wear a uniform, Watson. You’ll never pass as a pure-bred civilian as long as
you keep that habit of carrying your handkerchief in your sleeve. Could you put
me up to-night?”
“With pleasure.”
“You told me that you had bachelor quarters for one, and I see that you have
no gentleman visitor at present. Your hat-stand proclaims as much.”
“Ah! He has left two nail-marks from his boot upon your linoleum just where
the light strikes it. No, thank you, I had some supper at Waterloo, but I’ll
smoke a pipe with you with pleasure.”
I handed him my pouch, and he seated himself opposite to me and smoked for
some time in silence. I was well aware that nothing but business of importance
would have brought him to me at such an hour, so I waited patiently until he
should come round to it.
“I see that you are professionally rather busy just now,” said he, glancing very
keenly across at me.
“Yes, I’ve had a busy day,” I answered. “It may seem very foolish in your eyes,”
I added, “but really I don’t know how you deduced it.”
“I have the advantage of knowing your habits, my dear Watson,” said he.
“When your round is a short one you walk, and when it is a long one you use a
hansom. As I perceive that your boots, although used, are by no means dirty, I
cannot doubt that you are at present busy enough to justify the hansom.”
“Excellent!” I cried.
“Elementary,” said he. “It is one of those instances where the reasoner can
produce an effect which seems remarkable to his neighbor, because the latter
has missed the one little point which is the basis of the deduction. The same
may be said, my dear fellow, for the effect of some of these little sketches of
yours, which is entirely meretricious, depending as it does upon your retaining
in your own hands some factors in the problem which are never imparted to
the reader. Now, at present I am in the position of these same readers, for I
hold in this hand several threads of one of the strangest cases which ever
perplexed a man’s brain, and yet I lack the one or two which are needful to
complete my theory. But I’ll have them, Watson, I’ll have them!” His eyes
kindled and a slight flush sprang into his thin cheeks. For an instant only.
When I glanced again his face had resumed that red-Indian composure which
had made so many regard him as a machine rather than a man.
“The problem presents features of interest,” said he. “I may even say
exceptional features of interest. I have already looked into the matter, and have
come, as I think, within sight of my solution. If you could accompany me in
that last step you might be of considerable service to me.”
“I should be delighted.”
“Then, if you are not too sleepy, I will give you a sketch of what has happened,
and of what remains to be done.”
“I will compress the story as far as may be done without omitting anything vital
to the case. It is conceivable that you may even have read some account of the
matter. It is the supposed murder of Colonel Barclay, of the Royal Munsters, at
Aldershot, which I am investigating.”
“It has not excited much attention yet, except locally. The facts are only two
days old. Briefly they are these:
“The Royal Munsters is, as you know, one of the most famous Irish regiments
in the British army. It did wonders both in the Crimea and the Mutiny, and has
since that time distinguished itself upon every possible occasion. It was
commanded up to Monday night by James Barclay, a gallant veteran, who
started as a full private, was raised to commissioned rank for his bravery at the
time of the Mutiny, and so lived to command the regiment in which he had
once carried a musket.
“Colonel Barclay had married at the time when he was a sergeant, and his wife,
whose maiden name was Miss Nancy Devoy, was the daughter of a former
color-sergeant in the same corps. There was, therefore, as can be imagined,
some little social friction when the young couple (for they were still young)
found themselves in their new surroundings. They appear, however, to have
quickly adapted themselves, and Mrs. Barclay has always, I understand, been as
popular with the ladies of the regiment as her husband was with his brother
officers. I may add that she was a woman of great beauty, and that even now,
when she has been married for upwards of thirty years, she is still of a striking
and queenly appearance.
“Colonel Barclay’s family life appears to have been a uniformly happy one.
Major Murphy, to whom I owe most of my facts, assures me that he has never
heard of any misunderstanding between the pair. On the whole, he thinks that
Barclay’s devotion to his wife was greater than his wife’s to Barclay. He was
acutely uneasy if he were absent from her for a day. She, on the other hand,
though devoted and faithful, was less obtrusively affectionate. But they were
regarded in the regiment as the very model of a middle-aged couple. There was
absolutely nothing in their mutual relations to prepare people for the tragedy
which was to follow.
“Colonel Barclay himself seems to have had some singular traits in his
character. He was a dashing, jovial old soldier in his usual mood, but there were
occasions on which he seemed to show himself capable of considerable
violence and vindictiveness. This side of his nature, however, appears never to
have been turned towards his wife. Another fact, which had struck Major
Murphy and three out of five of the other officers with whom I conversed, was
the singular sort of depression which came upon him at times. As the major
expressed it, the smile had often been struck from his mouth, as if by some
invisible hand, when he has been joining the gayeties and chaff of the mess-
table. For days on end, when the mood was on him, he has been sunk in the
deepest gloom. This and a certain tinge of superstition were the only unusual
traits in his character which his brother officers had observed. The latter
peculiarity took the form of a dislike to being left alone, especially after dark.
This puerile feature in a nature which was conspicuously manly had often given
rise to comment and conjecture.
“The first battalion of the Royal Munsters (which is the old 117th) has been
stationed at Aldershot for some years. The married officers live out of barracks,
and the Colonel has during all this time occupied a villa called Lachine, about
half a mile from the north camp. The house stands in its own grounds, but the
west side of it is not more than thirty yards from the high-road. A coachman
and two maids form the staff of servants. These with their master and mistress
were the sole occupants of Lachine, for the Barclays had no children, nor was it
usual for them to have resident visitors.
“Now for the events at Lachine between nine and ten on the evening of last
Monday.”
“Mrs. Barclay was, it appears, a member of the Roman Catholic Church, and
had interested herself very much in the establishment of the Guild of St.
George, which was formed in connection with the Watt Street Chapel for the
purpose of supplying the poor with cast-off clothing. A meeting of the Guild
had been held that evening at eight, and Mrs. Barclay had hurried over her
dinner in order to be present at it. When leaving the house she was heard by
the coachman to make some commonplace remark to her husband, and to
assure him that she would be back before very long. She then called for Miss
Morrison, a young lady who lives in the next villa, and the two went off
together to their meeting. It lasted forty minutes, and at a quarter-past nine
Mrs. Barclay returned home, having left Miss Morrison at her door as she
passed.
“The tea which had been ordered was brought up at the end of ten minutes;
but the maid, as she approached the door, was surprised to hear the voices of
her master and mistress in furious altercation. She knocked without receiving
any answer, and even turned the handle, but only to find that the door was
locked upon the inside. Naturally enough she ran down to tell the cook, and
the two women with the coachman came up into the hall and listened to the
dispute which was still raging. They all agreed that only two voices were to be
heard, those of Barclay and of his wife. Barclay’s remarks were subdued and
abrupt, so that none of them were audible to the listeners. The lady’s, on the
other hand, were most bitter, and when she raised her voice could be plainly
heard. ‘You coward!’ she repeated over and over again. ‘What can be done
now? What can be done now? Give me back my life. I will never so much as
breathe the same air with you again! You coward! You coward!’ Those were
scraps of her conversation, ending in a sudden dreadful cry in the man’s voice,
with a crash, and a piercing scream from the woman. Convinced that some
tragedy had occurred, the coachman rushed to the door and strove to force it,
while scream after scream issued from within. He was unable, however, to
make his way in, and the maids were too distracted with fear to be of any
assistance to him. A sudden thought struck him, however, and he ran through
the hall door and round to the lawn upon which the long French windows
open. One side of the window was open, which I understand was quite usual in
the summer-time, and he passed without difficulty into the room. His mistress
had ceased to scream and was stretched insensible upon a couch, while with his
feet tilted over the side of an arm-chair, and his head upon the ground near the
corner of the fender, was lying the unfortunate soldier stone dead in a pool of
his own blood.
“The injury from which the unfortunate veteran was suffering was found to be
a jagged cut some two inches long at the back part of his head, which had
evidently been caused by a violent blow from a blunt weapon. Nor was it
difficult to guess what that weapon may have been. Upon the floor, close to the
body, was lying a singular club of hard carved wood with a bone handle. The
Colonel possessed a varied collection of weapons brought from the different
countries in which he had fought, and it is conjectured by the police that his
club was among his trophies. The servants deny having seen it before, but
among the numerous curiosities in the house it is possible that it may have
been overlooked. Nothing else of importance was discovered in the room by
the police, save the inexplicable fact that neither upon Mrs. Barclay’s person
nor upon that of the victim nor in any part of the room was the missing key to
be found. The door had eventually to be opened by a locksmith from
Aldershot.
“That was the state of things, Watson, when upon the Tuesday morning I, at
the request of Major Murphy, went down to Aldershot to supplement the
efforts of the police. I think that you will acknowledge that the problem was
already one of interest, but my observations soon made me realize that it was in
truth much more extraordinary than would at first sight appear.
“There was one thing in the case which had made the deepest impression both
upon the servants and the police. This was the contortion of the Colonel’s face.
It had set, according to their account, into the most dreadful expression of fear
and horror which a human countenance is capable of assuming. More than one
person fainted at the mere sight of him, so terrible was the effect. It was quite
certain that he had foreseen his fate, and that it had caused him the utmost
horror. This, of course, fitted in well enough with the police theory, if the
Colonel could have seen his wife making a murderous attack upon him. Nor
was the fact of the wound being on the back of his head a fatal objection to
this, as he might have turned to avoid the blow. No information could be got
from the lady herself, who was temporarily insane from an acute attack of
brain-fever.
“From the police I learned that Miss Morrison, who you remember went out
that evening with Mrs. Barclay, denied having any knowledge of what it was
which had caused the ill-humor in which her companion had returned.
“Having gathered these facts, Watson, I smoked several pipes over them, trying
to separate those which were crucial from others which were merely incidental.
There could be no question that the most distinctive and suggestive point in
the case was the singular disappearance of the door-key. A most careful search
had failed to discover it in the room. Therefore it must have been taken from
it. But neither the Colonel nor the Colonel’s wife could have taken it. That was
perfectly clear. Therefore a third person must have entered the room. And that
third person could only have come in through the window. It seemed to me
that a careful examination of the room and the lawn might possibly reveal some
traces of this mysterious individual. You know my methods, Watson. There
was not one of them which I did not apply to the inquiry. And it ended by my
discovering traces, but very different ones from those which I had expected.
There had been a man in the room, and he had crossed the lawn coming from
the road. I was able to obtain five very clear impressions of his foot-marks: one
in the roadway itself, at the point where he had climbed the low wall, two on
the lawn, and two very faint ones upon the stained boards near the window
where he had entered. He had apparently rushed across the lawn, for his toe-
marks were much deeper than his heels. But it was not the man who surprised
me. It was his companion.”
“His companion!”
Holmes pulled a large sheet of tissue-paper out of his pocket and carefully
unfolded it upon his knee.
The paper was covered with he tracings of the foot-marks of some small
animal. It had five well-marked foot-pads, an indication of long nails, and the
whole print might be nearly as large as a dessert-spoon.
“Did you ever hear of a dog running up a curtain? I found distinct traces that
this creature had done so.”
“A monkey, then?”
“Neither dog nor cat nor monkey nor any creature that we are familiar with. I
have tried to reconstruct it from the measurements. Here are four prints where
the beast has been standing motionless. You see that it is no less than fifteen
inches from fore-foot to hind. Add to that the length of neck and head, and
you get a creature not much less than two feet long—probably more if there is
any tail. But now observe this other measurement. The animal has been
moving, and we have the length of its stride. In each case it is only about three
inches. You have an indication, you see, of a long body with very short legs
attached to it. It has not been considerate enough to leave any of its hair behind
it. But its general shape must be what I have indicated, and it can run up a
curtain, and it is carnivorous.”
“Because it ran up the curtain. A canary’s cage was hanging in the window, and
its aim seems to have been to get at the bird.”
“Ah, if I could give it a name it might go a long way towards solving the case.
On the whole, it was probably some creature of the weasel and stoat tribe—
and yet it is larger than any of these that I have seen.”
“That, also, is still obscure. But we have learned a good deal, you perceive. We
know that a man stood in the road looking at the quarrel between the
Barclays—the blinds were up and the room lighted. We know, also, that he ran
across the lawn, entered the room, accompanied by a strange animal, and that
he either struck the Colonel or, as is equally possible, that the Colonel fell down
from sheer fright at the sight of him, and cut his head on the corner of the
fender. Finally, we have the curious fact that the intruder carried away the key
with him when he left.”
“Your discoveries seem to have left the business more obscure that it was
before,” said I.
“Quite so. They undoubtedly showed that the affair was much deeper than was
at first conjectured. I thought the matter over, and I came to the conclusion
that I must approach the case from another aspect. But really, Watson, I am
keeping you up, and I might just as well tell you all this on our way to
Aldershot to-morrow.”
“Thank you, you have gone rather too far to stop.”
“It is quite certain that when Mrs. Barclay left the house at half-past seven she
was on good terms with her husband. She was never, as I think I have said,
ostentatiously affectionate, but she was heard by the coachman chatting with
the Colonel in a friendly fashion. Now, it was equally certain that, immediately
on her return, she had gone to the room in which she was least likely to see her
husband, had flown to tea as an agitated woman will, and finally, on his coming
in to her, had broken into violent recriminations. Therefore something had
occurred between seven-thirty and nine o’clock which had completely altered
her feelings towards him. But Miss Morrison had been with her during the
whole of that hour and a half. It was absolutely certain, therefore, in spite of
her denial, that she must know something of the matter.
“My first conjecture was, that possibly there had been some passages between
this young lady and the old soldier, which the former had now confessed to the
wife. That would account for the angry return, and also for the girl’s denial that
anything had occurred. Nor would it be entirely incompatible with most of the
words overhead. But there was the reference to David, and there was the
known affection of the Colonel for his wife, to weigh against it, to say nothing
of the tragic intrusion of this other man, which might, of course, be entirely
disconnected with what had gone before. It was not easy to pick one’s steps,
but, on the whole, I was inclined to dismiss the idea that there had been
anything between the Colonel and Miss Morrison, but more than ever
convinced that the young lady held the clue as to what it was which had turned
Mrs. Barclay to hatred of her husband. I took the obvious course, therefore, of
calling upon Miss M., of explaining to her that I was perfectly certain that she
held the facts in her possession, and of assuring her that her friend, Mrs.
Barclay, might find herself in the dock upon a capital charge unless the matter
were cleared up.
“Miss Morrison is a little ethereal slip of a girl, with timid eyes and blond hair,
but I found her by no means wanting in shrewdness and common-sense. She
sat thinking for some time after I had spoken, and then, turning to me with a
brisk air of resolution, she broke into a remarkable statement which I will
condense for your benefit.
“‘I promised my friend that I would say nothing of the matter, and a promise is
a promise,’ said she; ‘but if I can really help her when so serious a charge is laid
against her, and when her own mouth, poor darling, is closed by illness, then I
think I am absolved from my promise. I will tell you exactly what happened
upon Monday evening.
“‘We were returning from the Watt Street Mission about a quarter to nine
o’clock. On our way we had to pass through Hudson Street, which is a very
quiet thoroughfare. There is only one lamp in it, upon the left-hand side, and as
we approached this lamp I saw a man coming towards us with his back very
bent, and something like a box slung over one of his shoulders. He appeared to
be deformed, for he carried his head low and walked with his knees bent. We
were passing him when he raised his face to look at us in the circle of light
thrown by the lamp, and as he did so he stopped and screamed out in a
dreadful voice, “My God, it’s Nancy!” Mrs. Barclay turned as white as death,
and would have fallen down had the dreadful-looking creature not caught hold
of her. I was going to call for the police, but she, to my surprise, spoke quite
civilly to the fellow.
“‘“I thought you had been dead this thirty years, Henry,” said she, in a shaking
voice.
“‘“So I have,” said he, and it was awful to hear the tones that he said it in. He
had a very dark, fearsome face, and a gleam in his eyes that comes back to me
in my dreams. His hair and whiskers were shot with gray, and his face was all
crinkled and puckered like a withered apple.
“‘“Just walk on a little way, dear,” said Mrs. Barclay; “I want to have a word
with this man. There is nothing to be afraid of.” She tried to speak boldly, but
she was still deadly pale and could hardly get her words out for the trembling of
her lips.
“‘I did as she asked me, and they talked together for a few minutes. Then she
came down the street with her eyes blazing, and I saw the crippled wretch
standing by the lamp-post and shaking his clenched fists in the air as if he were
mad with rage. She never said a word until we were at the door here, when she
took me by the hand and begged me to tell no one what had happened.
“‘“It’s an old acquaintance of mine who has come down in the world,” said
she. When I promised her I would say nothing she kissed me, and I have never
seen her since. I have told you now the whole truth, and if I withheld it from
the police it is because I did not realize then the danger in which my dear friend
stood. I know that it can only be to her advantage that everything should be
known.’
“There was her statement, Watson, and to me, as you can imagine, it was like a
light on a dark night. Everything which had been disconnected before began at
once to assume its true place, and I had a shadowy presentiment of the whole
sequence of events. My next step obviously was to find the man who had
produced such a remarkable impression upon Mrs. Barclay. If he were still in
Aldershot it should not be a very difficult matter. There are not such a very
great number of civilians, and a deformed man was sure to have attracted
attention. I spent a day in the search, and by evening—this very evening,
Watson—I had run him down. The man’s name is Henry Wood, and he lives in
lodgings in this same street in which the ladies met him. He has only been five
days in the place. In the character of a registration-agent I had a most
interesting gossip with his landlady. The man is by trade a conjurer and
performer, going round the canteens after nightfall, and giving a little
entertainment at each. He carries some creature about with him in that box;
about which the landlady seemed to be in considerable trepidation, for she had
never seen an animal like it. He uses it in some of his tricks according to her
account. So much the woman was able to tell me, and also that it was a wonder
the man lived, seeing how twisted he was, and that he spoke in a strange tongue
sometimes, and that for the last two nights she had heard him groaning and
weeping in his bedroom. He was all right, as far as money went, but in his
deposit he had given her what looked like a bad florin. She showed it to me,
Watson, and it was an Indian rupee.
“So now, my dear fellow, you see exactly how we stand and why it is I want
you. It is perfectly plain that after the ladies parted from this man he followed
them at a distance, that he saw the quarrel between husband and wife through
the window, that he rushed in, and that the creature which he carried in his box
got loose. That is all very certain. But he is the only person in this world who
can tell us exactly what happened in that room.”
“If you will be so good. If he can clear the matter up, well and good. If he
refuses, we have no alternative but to apply for a warrant.”
It was midday when we found ourselves at the scene of the tragedy, and, under
my companion’s guidance, we made our way at once to Hudson Street. In spite
of his capacity for concealing his emotions, I could easily see that Holmes was
in a state of suppressed excitement, while I was myself tingling with that half-
sporting, half-intellectual pleasure which I invariably experienced when I
associated myself with him in his investigations.
“This is the street,” said he, as we turned into a short thoroughfare lined with
plain two-storied brick houses. “Ah, here is Simpson to report.”
“He’s in all right, Mr. Holmes,” cried a small street Arab, running up to us.
“Good, Simpson!” said Holmes, patting him on the head. “Come along,
Watson. This is the house.” He sent in his card with a message that he had
come on important business, and a moment later we were face to face with the
man whom we had come to see. In spite of the warm weather he was
crouching over a fire, and the little room was like an oven. The man sat all
twisted and huddled in his chair in a way which gave an indescribably
impression of deformity; but the face which he turned towards us, though
worn and swarthy, must at some time have been remarkable for its beauty. He
looked suspiciously at us now out of yellow-shot, bilious eyes, and, without
speaking or rising, he waved towards two chairs.
“Mr. Henry Wood, late of India, I believe,” said Holmes, affably. “I’ve come
over this little matter of Colonel Barclay’s death.”
“That’s what I want to ascertain. You know, I suppose, that unless the matter is
cleared up, Mrs. Barclay, who is an old friend of yours, will in all probability be
tried for murder.”
“Why, they are only waiting for her to come to her senses to arrest her.”
“No.”
“No, I am not.”
“It was a just providence that killed him. But, mind you this, that if I had
knocked his brains out, as it was in my heart to do, he would have had no more
than his due from my hands. If his own guilty conscience had not struck him
down it is likely enough that I might have had his blood upon my soul. You
want me to tell the story. Well, I don’t know why I shouldn’t, for there’s no
cause for me to be ashamed of it.
“It was in this way, sir. You see me now with my back like a camel and my ribs
all awry, but there was a time when Corporal Henry Wood was the smartest
man in the 117th foot. We were in India then, in cantonments, at a place we’ll
call Bhurtee. Barclay, who died the other day, was sergeant in the same
company as myself, and the belle of the regiment, ay, and the finest girl that
ever had the breath of life between her lips, was Nancy Devoy, the daughter of
the color-sergeant. There were two men that loved her, and one that she loved,
and you’ll smile when you look at this poor thing huddled before the fire, and
hear me say that it was for my good looks that she loved me.
“Well, though I had her heart, her father was set upon her marrying Barclay. I
was a harum-scarum, reckless lad, and he had had an education, and was
already marked for the sword-belt. But the girl held true to me, and it seemed
that I would have had her when the Mutiny broke out, and all hell was loose in
the country.
“We were shut up in Bhurtee, the regiment of us with half a battery of artillery,
a company of Sikhs, and a lot of civilians and women-folk. There were ten
thousand rebels round us, and they were as keen as a set of terriers round a rat-
cage. About the second week of it our water gave out, and it was a question
whether we could communicate with General Neill’s column, which was
moving up country. It was our only chance, for we could not hope to fight our
way out with all the women and children, so I volunteered to go out and to
warn General Neill of our danger. My offer was accepted, and I talked it over
with Sergeant Barclay, who was supposed to know the ground better than any
other man, and who drew up a route by which I might get through the rebel
lines. At ten o’clock the same night I started off upon my journey. There were a
thousand lives to save, but it was of only one that I was thinking when I
dropped over the wall that night.
“My way ran down a dried-up watercourse, which we hoped would screen me
from the enemy’s sentries; but as I crept round the corner of it I walked right
into six of them, who were crouching down in the dark waiting for me. In an
instant I was stunned with a blow and bound hand and foot. But the real blow
was to my heart and not to my head, for as I came to and listened to as much
as I could understand of their talk, I heard enough to tell me that my comrade,
the very man who had arranged the way that I was to take, had betrayed me by
means of a native servant into the hands of the enemy.
“Well, there’s no need for me to dwell on that part of it. You know now what
James Barclay was capable of. Bhurtee was relieved by Neill next day, but the
rebels took me away with them in their retreat, and it was many a long year
before ever I saw a white face again. I was tortured and tried to get away, and
was captured and tortured again. You can see for yourselves the state in which
I was left. Some of them that fled into Nepaul took me with them, and then
afterwards I was up past Darjeeling. The hill-folk up there murdered the rebels
who had me, and I became their slave for a time until I escaped; but instead of
going south I had to go north, until I found myself among the Afghans. There
I wandered about for many a year, and at last came back to the Punjab, where I
lived mostly among the natives and picked up a living by the conjuring tricks
that I had learned. What use was it for me, a wretched cripple, to go back to
England or to make myself known to my old comrades? Even my wish for
revenge would not make me do that. I had rather that Nancy and my old pals
should think of Harry Wood as having died with a straight back, than see him
living and crawling with a stick like a chimpanzee. They never doubted that I
was dead, and I meant that they never should. I heard that Barclay had married
Nancy, and that he was rising rapidly in the regiment, but even that did not
make me speak.
“But when one gets old one has a longing for home. For years I’ve been
dreaming of the bright green fields and the hedges of England. At last I
determined to see them before I died. I saved enough to bring me across, and
then I came here where the soldiers are, for I know their ways and how to
amuse them and so earn enough to keep me.”
“I did, sir, and at the sight of me he looked as I have never seen a man look
before, and over he went with his head on the fender. But he was dead before
he fell. I read death on his face as plain as I can read that text over the fire. The
bare sight of me was like a bullet through his guilty heart.”
“And then?”
“Then Nancy fainted, and I caught up the key of the door from her hand,
intending to unlock it and get help. But as I was doing it it seemed to me better
to leave it alone and get away, for the thing might look black against me, and
any way my secret would be out if I were taken. In my haste I thrust the key
into my pocket, and dropped my stick while I was chasing Teddy, who had run
up the curtain. When I got him into his box, from which he had slipped, I was
off as fast as I could run.”
The man leaned over and pulled up the front of a kind of hutch in the corner.
In an instant out there slipped a beautiful reddish-brown creature, thin and
lithe, with the legs of a stoat, a long, thin nose, and a pair of the finest red eyes
that ever I saw in an animal’s head.
“Well, we may have to apply to you again if Mrs. Barclay should prove to be in
serious trouble.”
“But if not, there is no object in raking up this scandal against a dead man,
foully as he has acted. You have at least the satisfaction of knowing that for
thirty years of his life his conscience bitterly reproached him for this wicked
deed. Ah, there goes Major Murphy on the other side of the street. Good-by,
Wood. I want to learn if anything has happened since yesterday.”
“Ah, Holmes,” he said: “I suppose you have heard that all this fuss has come to
nothing?”
“What then?”
“The inquest is just over. The medical evidence showed conclusively that death
was due to apoplexy. You see it was quite a simple case after all.”
“There’s one thing,” said I, as we walked down to the station. “If the husband’s
name was James, and the other was Henry, what was this talk about David?”
“That one word, my dear Watson, should have told me the whole story had I
been the ideal reasoner which you are so fond of depicting. It was evidently a
term of reproach.”
“Of reproach?”
“Yes; David strayed a little occasionally, you know, and on one occasion in the
same direction as Sergeant James Barclay. You remember the small affair of
Uriah and Bathsheba? My biblical knowledge is a trifle rusty, I fear, but you will
find the story in the first or second of Samuel.”
Glancing over the somewhat incoherent series of Memoirs with which I have
endeavored to illustrate a few of the mental peculiarities of my friend Mr.
Sherlock Holmes, I have been struck by the difficulty which I have experienced
in picking out examples which shall in every way answer my purpose. For in
those cases in which Holmes has performed some tour de force of analytical
reasoning, and has demonstrated the value of his peculiar methods of
investigation, the facts themselves have often been so slight or so
commonplace that I could not feel justified in laying them before the public.
On the other hand, it has frequently happened that he has been concerned in
some research where the facts have been of the most remarkable and dramatic
character, but where the share which he has himself taken in determining their
causes has been less pronounced than I, as his biographer, could wish. The
small matter which I have chronicled under the heading of “A Study in
Scarlet,” and that other later one connected with the loss of the Gloria Scott,
may serve as examples of this Scylla and Charybdis which are forever
threatening the historian. It may be that in the business of which I am now
about to write the part which my friend played is not sufficiently accentuated;
and yet the whole train of circumstances is so remarkable that I cannot bring
myself to omit it entirely from this series.
It had been a close, rainy day in October. Our blinds were half-drawn, and
Holmes lay curled upon the sofa, reading and re-reading a letter which he had
received by the morning post. For myself, my term of service in India had
trained me to stand heat better than cold, and a thermometer of 90 was no
hardship. But the paper was uninteresting. Parliament had risen. Everybody
was out of town, and I yearned for the glades of the New Forest or the shingle
of Southsea. A depleted bank account had caused me to postpone my holiday,
and as to my companion, neither the country nor the sea presented the slightest
attraction to him. He loved to lie in the very centre of five millions of people,
with his filaments stretching out and running through them, responsive to
every little rumor or suspicion of unsolved crime. Appreciation of Nature
found no place among his many gifts, and his only change was when he turned
his mind from the evil-doer of the town to track down his brother of the
country.
Finding that Holmes was too absorbed for conversation, I had tossed aside the
barren paper, and leaning back in my chair, I fell into a brown study. Suddenly
my companion’s voice broke in upon my thoughts.
“You are right, Watson,” said he. “It does seem a very preposterous way of
settling a dispute.”
“What is this, Holmes?” I cried. “This is beyond anything which I could have
imagined.”
“You remember,” said he, “that some little time ago, when I read you the
passage in one of Poe’s sketches, in which a close reasoner follows the
unspoken thought of his companion, you were inclined to treat the matter as a
mere tour de force of the author. On my remarking that I was constantly in the
habit of doing the same thing you expressed incredulity.”
“Oh, no!”
“Perhaps not with your tongue, my dear Watson, but certainly with your
eyebrows. So when I saw you throw down your paper and enter upon a train of
thought, I was very happy to have the opportunity of reading it off, and
eventually of breaking into it, as a proof that I had been in rapport with you.”
But I was still far from satisfied. “In the example which you read to me,” said I,
“the reasoner drew his conclusions from the actions of the man whom he
observed. If I remember right, he stumbled over a heap of stones, looked up at
the stars, and so on. But I have been seated quietly in my chair, and what clues
can I have given you?”
“You do yourself an injustice. The features are given to man as the means by
which he shall express his emotions, and yours are faithful servants.”
“Do you mean to say that you read my train of thoughts from my features?”
“Your features, and especially your eyes. Perhaps you cannot yourself recall
how your reverie commenced?”
“No, I cannot.”
“Then I will tell you. After throwing down your paper, which was the action
which drew my attention to you, you sat for half a minute with a vacant
expression. Then your eyes fixed themselves upon your newly-framed picture
of General Gordon, and I saw by the alteration in your face that a train of
thought had been started. But it did not lead very far. Your eyes turned across
to the unframed portrait of Henry Ward Beecher which stands upon the top of
your books. You then glanced up at the wall, and of course your meaning was
obvious. You were thinking that if the portrait were framed it would just cover
that bare space and correspond with Gordon’s picture over there.”
“So far I could hardly have gone astray. But now your thoughts went back to
Beecher, and you looked hard across as if you were studying the character in
his features. Then your eyes ceased to pucker, but you continued to look
across, and your face was thoughtful. You were recalling the incidents of
Beecher’s career. I was well aware that you could not do this without thinking
of the mission which he undertook on behalf of the North at the time of the
Civil War, for I remember you expressing your passionate indignation at the
way in which he was received by the more turbulent of our people. You felt so
strongly about it that I knew you could not think of Beecher without thinking
of that also. When a moment later I saw your eyes wander away from the
picture, I suspected that your mind had now turned to the Civil War, and when
I observed that your lips set, your eyes sparkled, and your hands clinched, I was
positive that you were indeed thinking of the gallantry which was shown by
both sides in that desperate struggle. But then, again, your face grew sadder;
you shook your head. You were dwelling upon the sadness and horror and
useless waste of life. Your hand stole towards your own old wound, and a smile
quivered on your lips, which showed me that the ridiculous side of this method
of settling international questions had forced itself upon your mind. At this
point I agreed with you that it was preposterous, and was glad to find that all
my deductions had been correct.”
“Absolutely!” said I. “And now that you have explained it, I confess that I am
as amazed as before.”
“It was very superficial, my dear Watson, I assure you. I should not have
intruded it upon your attention had you not shown some incredulity the other
day. But the evening has brought a breeze with it. What do you say to a ramble
through London?”
I was weary of our little sitting-room and gladly acquiesced. For three hours we
strolled about together, watching the ever-changing kaleidoscope of life as it
ebbs and flows through Fleet Street and the Strand. His characteristic talk, with
its keen observance of detail and subtle power of inference held me amused
and enthralled. It was ten o’clock before we reached Baker Street again. A
brougham was waiting at our door.
A pale, taper-faced man with sandy whiskers rose up from a chair by the fire as
we entered. His age may not have been more than three or four and thirty, but
his haggard expression and unhealthy hue told of a life which has sapped his
strength and robbed him of his youth. His manner was nervous and shy, like
that of a sensitive gentleman, and the thin white hand which he laid on the
mantelpiece as he rose was that of an artist rather than of a surgeon. His dress
was quiet and sombre—a black frock-coat, dark trousers, and a touch of color
about his necktie.
“Good-evening, doctor,” said Holmes, cheerily. “I am glad to see that you have
only been waiting a very few minutes.”
“You spoke to my coachman, then?”
“No, it was the candle on the side-table that told me. Pray resume your seat
and let me know how I can serve you.”
“My name is Doctor Percy Trevelyan,” said our visitor, “and I live at 403
Brook Street.”
“Are you not the author of a monograph upon obscure nervous lesions?” I
asked.
His pale cheeks flushed with pleasure at hearing that his work was known to
me.
“I so seldom hear of the work that I thought it was quite dead,” said he. “My
publishers gave me a most discouraging account of its sale. You are yourself, I
presume, a medical man?”
“My own hobby has always been nervous disease. I should wish to make it an
absolute specialty, but, of course, a man must take what he can get at first. This,
however, is beside the question, Mr. Sherlock Holmes, and I quite appreciate
how valuable your time is. The fact is that a very singular train of events has
occurred recently at my house in Brook Street, and to-night they came to such
a head that I felt it was quite impossible for me to wait another hour before
asking for your advice and assistance.”
Sherlock Holmes sat down and lit his pipe. “You are very welcome to both,”
said he. “Pray let me have a detailed account of what the circumstances are
which have disturbed you.”
“One or two of them are so trivial,” said Dr. Trevelyan, “that really I am
almost ashamed to mention them. But the matter is so inexplicable, and the
recent turn which it has taken is so elaborate, that I shall lay it all before you,
and you shall judge what is essential and what is not.
“But the one great stumbling-block lay in my want of capital. As you will
readily understand, a specialist who aims high is compelled to start in one of a
dozen streets in the Cavendish Square quarter, all of which entail enormous
rents and furnishing expenses. Besides this preliminary outlay, he must be
prepared to keep himself for some years, and to hire a presentable carriage and
horse. To do this was quite beyond my power, and I could only hope that by
economy I might in ten years’ time save enough to enable me to put up my
plate. Suddenly, however, an unexpected incident opened up quite a new
prospect to me.
“This was a visit from a gentleman of the name of Blessington, who was a
complete stranger to me. He came up to my room one morning, and plunged
into business in an instant.
“‘You are the same Percy Trevelyan who has had so distinguished a career and
won a great prize lately?’ said he.
“I bowed.
“‘Quite right! That’s all right! But I was bound to ask. With all these qualities,
why are you not in practice?’
“I shrugged my shoulders.
“‘Come, come!’ said he, in his bustling way. ‘It’s the old story. More in your
brains than in your pocket, eh? What would you say if I were to start you in
Brook Street?’
“‘Oh, it’s for my sake, not for yours,’ he cried. ‘I’ll be perfectly frank with you,
and if it suits you it will suit me very well. I have a few thousands to invest, d’ye
see, and I think I’ll sink them in you.’
“‘Well, it’s just like any other speculation, and safer than most.’
“‘I’ll tell you. I’ll take the house, furnish it, pay the maids, and run the whole
place. All you have to do is just to wear out your chair in the consulting-room.
I’ll let you have pocket-money and everything. Then you hand over to me three
quarters of what you earn, and you keep the other quarter for yourself.’
“This was the strange proposal, Mr. Holmes, with which the man Blessington
approached me. I won’t weary you with the account of how we bargained and
negotiated. It ended in my moving into the house next Lady-day, and starting in
practice on very much the same conditions as he had suggested. He came
himself to live with me in the character of a resident patient. His heart was
weak, it appears, and he needed constant medical supervision. He turned the
two best rooms of the first floor into a sitting-room and bedroom for himself.
He was a man of singular habits, shunning company and very seldom going
out. His life was irregular, but in one respect he was regularity itself. Every
evening, at the same hour, he walked into the consulting-room, examined the
books, put down five and three-pence for every guinea that I had earned, and
carried the rest off to the strong-box in his own room.
“I may say with confidence that he never had occasion to regret his
speculation. From the first it was a success. A few good cases and the
reputation which I had won in the hospital brought me rapidly to the front, and
during the last few years I have made him a rich man.
“So much, Mr. Holmes, for my past history and my relations with Mr.
Blessington. It only remains for me now to tell you what has occurred to bring
me here to-night.
“Some weeks ago Mr. Blessington came down to me in, as it seemed to me, a
state of considerable agitation. He spoke of some burglary which, he said, had
been committed in the West End, and he appeared, I remember, to be quite
unnecessarily excited about it, declaring that a day should not pass before we
should add stronger bolts to our windows and doors. For a week he continued
to be in a peculiar state of restlessness, peering continually out of the windows,
and ceasing to take the short walk which had usually been the prelude to his
dinner. From his manner it struck me that he was in mortal dread of something
or somebody, but when I questioned him upon the point he became so
offensive that I was compelled to drop the subject. Gradually, as time passed,
his fears appeared to die away, and he had renewed his former habits, when a
fresh event reduced him to the pitiable state of prostration in which he now
lies.
“What happened was this. Two days ago I received the letter which I now read
to you. Neither address nor date is attached to it.
“‘A Russian nobleman who is now resident in England,’ it runs, ‘would be glad
to avail himself of the professional assistance of Dr. Percy Trevelyan. He has
been for some years a victim to cataleptic attacks, on which, as is well known,
Dr. Trevelyan is an authority. He proposes to call at about quarter past six to-
morrow evening, if Dr. Trevelyan will make it convenient to be at home.’
“This letter interested me deeply, because the chief difficulty in the study of
catalepsy is the rareness of the disease. You may believe, then, that I was in my
consulting-room when, at the appointed hour, the page showed in the patient.
“He was an elderly man, thin, demure, and commonplace—by no means the
conception one forms of a Russian nobleman. I was much more struck by the
appearance of his companion. This was a tall young man, surprisingly
handsome, with a dark, fierce face, and the limbs and chest of a Hercules. He
had his hand under the other’s arm as they entered, and helped him to a chair
with a tenderness which one would hardly have expected from his appearance.
“‘You will excuse my coming in, doctor,’ said he to me, speaking English with a
slight lisp. ‘This is my father, and his health is a matter of the most
overwhelming importance to me.’
“I was touched by this filial anxiety. ‘You would, perhaps, care to remain during
the consultation?’ said I.
“‘Not for the world,’ he cried with a gesture of horror. ‘It is more painful to me
than I can express. If I were to see my father in one of these dreadful seizures I
am convinced that I should never survive it. My own nervous system is an
exceptionally sensitive one. With your permission, I will remain in the waiting-
room while you go into my father’s case.’
“To this, of course, I assented, and the young man withdrew. The patient and I
then plunged into a discussion of his case, of which I took exhaustive notes.
He was not remarkable for intelligence, and his answers were frequently
obscure, which I attributed to his limited acquaintance with our language.
Suddenly, however, as I sat writing, he ceased to give any answer at all to my
inquiries, and on my turning towards him I was shocked to see that he was
sitting bolt upright in his chair, staring at me with a perfectly blank and rigid
face. He was again in the grip of his mysterious malady.
“My first feeling, as I have just said, was one of pity and horror. My second, I
fear, was rather one of professional satisfaction. I made notes of my patient’s
pulse and temperature, tested the rigidity of his muscles, and examined his
reflexes. There was nothing markedly abnormal in any of these conditions,
which harmonized with my former experiences. I had obtained good results in
such cases by the inhalation of nitrite of amyl, and the present seemed an
admirable opportunity of testing its virtues. The bottle was downstairs in my
laboratory, so leaving my patient seated in his chair, I ran down to get it. There
was some little delay in finding it—five minutes, let us say—and then I
returned. Imagine my amazement to find the room empty and the patient gone.
“Of course, my first act was to run into the waiting-room. The son had gone
also. The hall door had been closed, but not shut. My page who admits patients
is a new boy and by no means quick. He waits downstairs, and runs up to show
patients out when I ring the consulting-room bell. He had heard nothing, and
the affair remained a complete mystery. Mr. Blessington came in from his walk
shortly afterwards, but I did not say anything to him upon the subject, for, to
tell the truth, I have got in the way of late of holding as little communication
with him as possible.
“Well, I never thought that I should see anything more of the Russian and his
son, so you can imagine my amazement when, at the very same hour this
evening, they both came marching into my consulting-room, just as they had
done before.
“‘I feel that I owe you a great many apologies for my abrupt departure
yesterday, doctor,’ said my patient.
“‘Well, the fact is,’ he remarked, ‘that when I recover from these attacks my
mind is always very clouded as to all that has gone before. I woke up in a
strange room, as it seemed to me, and made my way out into the street in a sort
of dazed way when you were absent.’
“‘And I,’ said the son, ‘seeing my father pass the door of the waiting-room,
naturally thought that the consultation had come to an end. It was not until we
had reached home that I began to realize the true state of affairs.’
“‘Well,’ said I, laughing, ‘there is no harm done except that you puzzled me
terribly; so if you, sir, would kindly step into the waiting-room I shall be happy
to continue our consultation which was brought to so abrupt an ending.’
“‘For half an hour or so I discussed that old gentleman’s symptoms with him,
and then, having prescribed for him, I saw him go off upon the arm of his son.
“I have told you that Mr. Blessington generally chose this hour of the day for
his exercise. He came in shortly afterwards and passed upstairs. An instant later
I heard him running down, and he burst into my consulting-room like a man
who is mad with panic.
“I passed over the grossness of his language, as he seemed half out of his mind
with fear. When I went upstairs with him he pointed to several footprints upon
the light carpet.
“‘D’you mean to say those are mine?’ he cried.
“They were certainly very much larger than any which he could have made, and
were evidently quite fresh. It rained hard this afternoon, as you know, and my
patients were the only people who called. It must have been the case, then, that
the man in the waiting-room had, for some unknown reason, while I was busy
with the other, ascended to the room of my resident patient. Nothing had been
touched or taken, but there were the footprints to prove that the intrusion was
an undoubted fact.
“Mr. Blessington seemed more excited over the matter than I should have
thought possible, though of course it was enough to disturb anybody’s peace of
mind. He actually sat crying in an arm-chair, and I could hardly get him to
speak coherently. It was his suggestion that I should come round to you, and of
course I at once saw the propriety of it, for certainly the incident is a very
singular one, though he appears to completely overrate its importance. If you
would only come back with me in my brougham, you would at least be able to
soothe him, though I can hardly hope that you will be able to explain this
remarkable occurrence.”
Sherlock Holmes had listened to this long narrative with an intentness which
showed me that his interest was keenly aroused. His face was as impassive as
ever, but his lids had drooped more heavily over his eyes, and his smoke had
curled up more thickly from his pipe to emphasize each curious episode in the
doctor’s tale. As our visitor concluded, Holmes sprang up without a word,
handed me my hat, picked his own from the table, and followed Dr. Trevelyan
to the door. Within a quarter of an hour we had been dropped at the door of
the physician’s residence in Brook Street, one of those sombre, flat-faced
houses which one associates with a West-End practice. A small page admitted
us, and we began at once to ascend the broad, well-carpeted stair.
But a singular interruption brought us to a standstill. The light at the top was
suddenly whisked out, and from the darkness came a reedy, quivering voice.
“I have a pistol,” it cried. “I give you my word that I’ll fire if you come any
nearer.”
“Yes, yes, it’s all right,” said the voice at last. “You can come up, and I am
sorry if my precautions have annoyed you.”
He relit the stair gas as he spoke, and we saw before us a singular-looking man,
whose appearance, as well as his voice, testified to his jangled nerves. He was
very fat, but had apparently at some time been much fatter, so that the skin
hung about his face in loose pouches, like the cheeks of a blood-hound. He
was of a sickly color, and his thin, sandy hair seemed to bristle up with the
intensity of his emotion. In his hand he held a pistol, but he thrust it into his
pocket as we advanced.
“Quite so,” said Holmes. “Who are these two men Mr. Blessington, and why
do they wish to molest you?”
“Well, well,” said the resident patient, in a nervous fashion, “of course it is hard
to say that. You can hardly expect me to answer that, Mr. Holmes.”
“Come in here, if you please. Just have the kindness to step in here.”
He led the way into his bedroom, which was large and comfortably furnished.
“You see that,” said he, pointing to a big black box at the end of his bed. “I
have never been a very rich man, Mr. Holmes—never made but one
investment in my life, as Dr. Trevelyan would tell you. But I don’t believe in
bankers. I would never trust a banker, Mr. Holmes. Between ourselves, what
little I have is in that box, so you can understand what it means to me when
unknown people force themselves into my rooms.”
Holmes looked at Blessington in his questioning way and shook his head.
“I cannot possibly advise you if you try to deceive me,” said he.
A minute later we were in the street and walking for home. We had crossed
Oxford Street and were half way down Harley Street before I could get a word
from my companion.
“Sorry to bring you out on such a fool’s errand, Watson,” he said at last. “It is
an interesting case, too, at the bottom of it.”
“Well, it is quite evident that there are two men—more, perhaps, but at least
two—who are determined for some reason to get at this fellow Blessington. I
have no doubt in my mind that both on the first and on the second occasion
that young man penetrated to Blessington’s room, while his confederate, by an
ingenious device, kept the doctor from interfering.”
“And then?”
“By the purest chance Blessington was out on each occasion. Their reason for
choosing so unusual an hour for a consultation was obviously to insure that
there should be no other patient in the waiting-room. It just happened,
however, that this hour coincided with Blessington’s constitutional, which
seems to show that they were not very well acquainted with his daily routine.
Of course, if they had been merely after plunder they would at least have made
some attempt to search for it. Besides, I can read in a man’s eye when it is his
own skin that he is frightened for. It is inconceivable that this fellow could
have made two such vindictive enemies as these appear to be without knowing
of it. I hold it, therefore, to be certain that he does know who these men are,
and that for reasons of his own he suppresses it. It is just possible that to-
morrow may find him in a more communicative mood.”
I saw in the gaslight that Holmes wore an amused smile at this brilliant
departure of mine.
“My dear fellow,” said he, “it was one of the first solutions which occurred to
me, but I was soon able to corroborate the doctor’s tale. This young man has
left prints upon the stair-carpet which made it quite superfluous for me to ask
to see those which he had made in the room. When I tell you that his shoes
were square-toed instead of being pointed like Blessington’s, and were quite an
inch and a third longer than the doctor’s, you will acknowledge that there can
be no doubt as to his individuality. But we may sleep on it now, for I shall be
surprised if we do not hear something further from Brook Street in the
morning.”
“Tragic, but ambiguous,” said he, pulling up the blind. “Look at this—a sheet
from a note-book, with ‘For God’s sake come at once—P. T.,’ scrawled upon it
in pencil. Our friend, the doctor, was hard put to it when he wrote this. Come
along, my dear fellow, for it’s an urgent call.”
In a quarter of an hour or so we were back at the physician’s house. He came
running out to meet us with a face of horror.
“What then?”
Holmes whistled.
We had entered, and the doctor had preceded us into what was evidently his
waiting-room.
“I really hardly know what I am doing,” he cried. “The police are already
upstairs. It has shaken me most dreadfully.”
“He has a cup of tea taken in to him early every morning. When the maid
entered, about seven, there the unfortunate fellow was hanging in the middle of
the room. He had tied his cord to the hook on which the heavy lamp used to
hang, and he had jumped off from the top of the very box that he showed us
yesterday.”
“With your permission,” said he at last, “I should like to go upstairs and look
into the matter.”
It was a dreadful sight which met us as we entered the bedroom door. I have
spoken of the impression of flabbiness which this man Blessington conveyed.
As he dangled from the hook it was exaggerated and intensified until he was
scarce human in his appearance. The neck was drawn out like a plucked
chicken’s, making the rest of him seem the more obese and unnatural by the
contrast. He was clad only in his long night-dress, and his swollen ankles and
ungainly feet protruded starkly from beneath it. Beside him stood a smart-
looking police-inspector, who was taking notes in a pocket-book.
“As far as I can see, the man has been driven out of his senses by fright. The
bed has been well slept in, you see. There’s his impression deep enough. It’s
about five in the morning, you know, that suicides are most common. That
would be about his time for hanging himself. It seems to have been a very
deliberate affair.”
“I should say that he has been dead about three hours, judging by the rigidity of
the muscles,” said I.
“Oh, this is an Havana, and these others are cigars of the peculiar sort which
are imported by the Dutch from their East Indian colonies. They are usually
wrapped in straw, you know, and are thinner for their length than any other
brand.” He picked up the four ends and examined them with his pocket-lens.
“Two of these have been smoked from a holder and two without,” said he.
“Two have been cut by a not very sharp knife, and two have had the ends
bitten off by a set of excellent teeth. This is no suicide, Mr. Lanner. It is a very
deeply planned and cold-blooded murder.”
“And why?”
“I saw their traces. Excuse me a moment, and I may be able to give you some
further information about it.”
He went over to the door, and turning the lock he examined it in his
methodical way. Then he took out the key, which was on the inside, and
inspected that also. The bed, the carpet, the chairs the mantelpiece, the dead
body, and the rope were each in turn examined, until at last he professed
himself satisfied, and with my aid and that of the inspector cut down the
wretched object and laid it reverently under a sheet.
“That must have saved them trouble,” said Holmes, thoughtfully. “Yes, the
actual facts are very plain, and I shall be surprised if by the afternoon I cannot
give you the reasons for them as well. I will take this photograph of
Blessington, which I see upon the mantelpiece, as it may help me in my
inquiries.”
“Oh, there can be no doubt as to the sequence of events,” said Holmes. “There
were three of them in it: the young man, the old man, and a third, to whose
identity I have no clue. The first two, I need hardly remark, are the same who
masqueraded as the Russian count and his son, so we can give a very full
description of them. They were admitted by a confederate inside the house. If I
might offer you a word of advice, Inspector, it would be to arrest the page,
who, as I understand, has only recently come into your service, Doctor.”
“The young imp cannot be found,” said Dr. Trevelyan; “the maid and the cook
have just been searching for him.”
“He has played a not unimportant part in this drama,” said he. “The three men
having ascended the stairs, which they did on tiptoe, the elder man first, the
younger man second, and the unknown man in the rear—”
“On entering the room their first proceeding must have been to gag Mr.
Blessington. He may have been asleep, or he may have been so paralyzed with
terror as to have been unable to cry out. These walls are thick, and it is
conceivable that his shriek, if he had time to utter one, was unheard.
“Well, it ended by their taking Blessington and hanging him. The matter was so
prearranged that it is my belief that they brought with them some sort of block
or pulley which might serve as a gallows. That screw-driver and those screws
were, as I conceive, for fixing it up. Seeing the hook, however they naturally
saved themselves the trouble. Having finished their work they made off, and
the door was barred behind them by their confederate.”
We had all listened with the deepest interest to this sketch of the night’s doings,
which Holmes had deduced from signs so subtle and minute that, even when
he had pointed them out to us, we could scarcely follow him in his reasoning.
The inspector hurried away on the instant to make inquiries about the page,
while Holmes and I returned to Baker Street for breakfast.
“I’ll be back by three,” said he, when we had finished our meal. “Both the
inspector and the doctor will meet me here at that hour, and I hope by that
time to have cleared up any little obscurity which the case may still present.”
Our visitors arrived at the appointed time, but it was a quarter to four before
my friend put in an appearance. From his expression as he entered, however, I
could see that all had gone well with him.
“You must surely remember the great Worthingdon bank business,” said
Holmes. “Five men were in it—these four and a fifth called Cartwright. Tobin,
the care-taker, was murdered, and the thieves got away with seven thousand
pounds. This was in 1875. They were all five arrested, but the evidence against
them was by no means conclusive. This Blessington or Sutton, who was the
worst of the gang, turned informer. On his evidence Cartwright was hanged
and the other three got fifteen years apiece. When they got out the other day,
which was some years before their full term, they set themselves, as you
perceive, to hunt down the traitor and to avenge the death of their comrade
upon him. Twice they tried to get at him and failed; a third time, you see, it
came off. Is there anything further which I can explain, Dr. Trevelyan?”
“I think you have made it all remarkable clear,” said the doctor. “No doubt the
day on which he was perturbed was the day when he had seen of their release
in the newspapers.”
“Quite so. His talk about a burglary was the merest blind.”
“Well, my dear sir, knowing the vindictive character of his old associates, he
was trying to hide his own identity from everybody as long as he could. His
secret was a shameful one, and he could not bring himself to divulge it.
However, wretch as he was, he was still living under the shield of British law,
and I have no doubt, Inspector, that you will see that, though that shield may
fail to guard, the sword of justice is still there to avenge.”
Such were the singular circumstances in connection with the Resident Patient
and the Brook Street Doctor. From that night nothing has been seen of the
three murderers by the police, and it is surmised at Scotland Yard that they
were among the passengers of the ill-fated steamer Norah Creina, which was
lost some years ago with all hands upon the Portuguese coast, some leagues to
the north of Oporto. The proceedings against the page broke down for want of
evidence, and the Brook Street Mystery, as it was called, has never until now
been fully dealt with in any public print.
During my long and intimate acquaintance with Mr. Sherlock Holmes I had
never heard him refer to his relations, and hardly ever to his own early life. This
reticence upon his part had increased the somewhat inhuman effect which he
produced upon me, until sometimes I found myself regarding him as an
isolated phenomenon, a brain without a heart, as deficient in human sympathy
as he was pre-eminent in intelligence. His aversion to women and his
disinclination to form new friendships were both typical of his unemotional
character, but not more so than his complete suppression of every reference to
his own people. I had come to believe that he was an orphan with no relatives
living, but one day, to my very great surprise, he began to talk to me about his
brother.
It was after tea on a summer evening, and the conversation, which had roamed
in a desultory, spasmodic fashion from golf clubs to the causes of the change in
the obliquity of the ecliptic, came round at last to the question of atavism and
hereditary aptitudes. The point under discussion was, how far any singular gift
in an individual was due to his ancestry and how far to his own early training.
“In your own case,” said I, “from all that you have told me, it seems obvious
that your faculty of observation and your peculiar facility for deduction are due
to your own systematic training.”
“To some extent,” he answered, thoughtfully. “My ancestors were country
squires, who appear to have led much the same life as is natural to their class.
But, none the less, my turn that way is in my veins, and may have come with
my grandmother, who was the sister of Vernet, the French artist. Art in the
blood is liable to take the strangest forms.”
This was news to me indeed. If there were another man with such singular
powers in England, how was it that neither police nor public had heard of him?
I put the question, with a hint that it was my companion’s modesty which made
him acknowledge his brother as his superior. Holmes laughed at my suggestion.
“My dear Watson,” said he, “I cannot agree with those who rank modesty
among the virtues. To the logician all things should be seen exactly as they are,
and to underestimate one’s self is as much a departure from truth as to
exaggerate one’s own powers. When I say, therefore, that Mycroft has better
powers of observation than I, you may take it that I am speaking the exact and
literal truth.”
“Where, then?”
I had never heard of the institution, and my face must have proclaimed as
much, for Sherlock Holmes pulled out his watch.
“The Diogenes Club is the queerest club in London, and Mycroft one of the
queerest men. He’s always there from quarter to five to twenty to eight. It’s six
now, so if you care for a stroll this beautiful evening I shall be very happy to
introduce you to two curiosities.”
Five minutes later we were in the street, walking towards Regent’s Circus.
“You wonder,” said my companion, “why it is that Mycroft does not use his
powers for detective work. He is incapable of it.”
“I said that he was my superior in observation and deduction. If the art of the
detective began and ended in reasoning from an arm-chair, my brother would
be the greatest criminal agent that ever lived. But he has no ambition and no
energy. He will not even go out of his way to verify his own solutions, and
would rather be considered wrong than take the trouble to prove himself right.
Again and again I have taken a problem to him, and have received an
explanation which has afterwards proved to be the correct one. And yet he was
absolutely incapable of working out the practical points which must be gone
into before a case could be laid before a judge or jury.”
“Very likely not. There are many men in London, you know, who, some from
shyness, some from misanthropy, have no wish for the company of their
fellows. Yet they are not averse to comfortable chairs and the latest periodicals.
It is for the convenience of these that the Diogenes Club was started, and it
now contains the most unsociable and unclubable men in town. No member is
permitted to take the least notice of any other one. Save in the Stranger’s
Room, no talking is, under any circumstances, allowed, and three offences, if
brought to the notice of the committee, render the talker liable to expulsion.
My brother was one of the founders, and I have myself found it a very
soothing atmosphere.”
We had reached Pall Mall as we talked, and were walking down it from the St.
James’s end. Sherlock Holmes stopped at a door some little distance from the
Carlton, and, cautioning me not to speak, he led the way into the hall. Through
the glass paneling I caught a glimpse of a large and luxurious room, in which a
considerable number of men were sitting about and reading papers, each in his
own little nook. Holmes showed me into a small chamber which looked out
into Pall Mall, and then, leaving me for a minute, he came back with a
companion whom I knew could only be his brother.
Mycroft Holmes was a much larger and stouter man than Sherlock. His body
was absolutely corpulent, but his face, though massive, had preserved
something of the sharpness of expression which was so remarkable in that of
his brother. His eyes, which were of a peculiarly light, watery gray, seemed to
always retain that far-away, introspective look which I had only observed in
Sherlock’s when he was exerting his full powers.
“I am glad to meet you, sir,” said he, putting out a broad, fat hand like the
flipper of a seal. “I hear of Sherlock everywhere since you became his
chronicler. By the way, Sherlock, I expected to see you round last week, to
consult me over that Manor House case. I thought you might be a little out of
your depth.”
“I was sure of it from the first.” The two sat down together in the bow-window
of the club. “To any one who wishes to study mankind this is the spot,” said
Mycroft. “Look at the magnificent types! Look at these two men who are
coming towards us, for example.”
The two men had stopped opposite the window. Some chalk marks over the
waistcoat pocket were the only signs of billiards which I could see in one of
them. The other was a very small, dark fellow, with his hat pushed back and
several packages under his arm.
“An old soldier, I perceive,” said Sherlock.
“And a widower.”
“Surely,” answered Holmes, “it is not hard to say that a man with that bearing,
expression of authority, and sunbaked skin, is a soldier, is more than a private,
and is not long from India.”
“That he has not left the service long is shown by his still wearing his
ammunition boots, as they are called,” observed Mycroft.
“He had not the cavalry stride, yet he wore his hat on one side, as is shown by
the lighter skin of that side of his brow. His weight is against his being a sapper.
He is in the artillery.”
“Then, of course, his complete mourning shows that he has lost some one very
dear. The fact that he is doing his own shopping looks as though it were his
wife. He has been buying things for children, you perceive. There is a rattle,
which shows that one of them is very young. The wife probably died in
childbed. The fact that he has a picture-book under his arm shows that there is
another child to be thought of.”
I began to understand what my friend meant when he said that his brother
possessed even keener faculties that he did himself. He glanced across at me
and smiled. Mycroft took snuff from a tortoise-shell box, and brushed away the
wandering grains from his coat front with a large, red silk handkerchief.
“By the way, Sherlock,” said he, “I have had something quite after your own
heart—a most singular problem—submitted to my judgment. I really had not
the energy to follow it up save in a very incomplete fashion, but it gave me a
basis for some pleasing speculation. If you would care to hear the facts—”
The brother scribbled a note upon a leaf of his pocket-book, and, ringing the
bell, he handed it to the waiter.
“I have asked Mr. Melas to step across,” said he. “He lodges on the floor above
me, and I have some slight acquaintance with him, which led him to come to
me in his perplexity. Mr. Melas is a Greek by extraction, as I understand, and
he is a remarkable linguist. He earns his living partly as interpreter in the law
courts and partly by acting as guide to any wealthy Orientals who may visit the
Northumberland Avenue hotels. I think I will leave him to tell his very
remarkable experience in his own fashion.”
A few minutes later we were joined by a short, stout man whose olive face and
coal-black hair proclaimed his Southern origin, though his speech was that of
an educated Englishman. He shook hands eagerly with Sherlock Holmes, and
his dark eyes sparkled with pleasure when he understood that the specialist was
anxious to hear his story.
“I do not believe that the police credit me—on my word, I do not,” said he in a
wailing voice. “Just because they have never heard of it before, they think that
such a thing cannot be. But I know that I shall never be easy in my mind until I
know what has become of my poor man with the sticking-plaster upon his
face.”
“This is Wednesday evening,” said Mr. Melas. “Well then, it was Monday
night—only two days ago, you understand—that all this happened. I am an
interpreter, as perhaps my neighbor there has told you. I interpret all
languages—or nearly all—but as I am a Greek by birth and with a Grecian
name, it is with that particular tongue that I am principally associated. For
many years I have been the chief Greek interpreter in London, and my name is
very well known in the hotels.
“It happens not unfrequently that I am sent for at strange hours by foreigners
who get into difficulties, or by travelers who arrive late and wish my services. I
was not surprised, therefore, on Monday night when a Mr. Latimer, a very
fashionably dressed young man, came up to my rooms and asked me to
accompany him in a cab which was waiting at the door. A Greek friend had
come to see him upon business, he said, and as he could speak nothing but his
own tongue, the services of an interpreter were indispensable. He gave me to
understand that his house was some little distance off, in Kensington, and he
seemed to be in a great hurry, bustling me rapidly into the cab when we had
descended to the street.
“I say into the cab, but I soon became doubtful as to whether it was not a
carriage in which I found myself. It was certainly more roomy than the ordinary
four-wheeled disgrace to London, and the fittings, though frayed, were of rich
quality. Mr. Latimer seated himself opposite to me and we started off through
Charing Cross and up the Shaftesbury Avenue. We had come out upon Oxford
Street and I had ventured some remark as to this being a roundabout way to
Kensington, when my words were arrested by the extraordinary conduct of my
companion.
“‘I am sorry to cut off your view, Mr. Melas,’ said he. ‘The fact is that I have no
intention that you should see what the place is to which we are driving. It might
possibly be inconvenient to me if you could find your way there again.’
“As you can imagine, I was utterly taken aback by such an address. My
companion was a powerful, broad-shouldered young fellow, and, apart from
the weapon, I should not have had the slightest chance in a struggle with him.
“‘It is somewhat of a liberty, no doubt,’ said he, ‘but we’ll make it up to you. I
must warn you, however, Mr. Melas, that if at any time to-night you attempt to
raise an alarm or do anything which is against my interests, you will find it a
very serious thing. I beg you to remember that no one knows where you are,
and that, whether you are in this carriage or in my house, you are equally in my
power.’
“His words were quiet, but he had a rasping way of saying them which was very
menacing. I sat in silence wondering what on earth could be his reason for
kidnapping me in this extraordinary fashion. Whatever it might be, it was
perfectly clear that there was no possible use in my resisting, and that I could
only wait to see what might befall.
“For nearly two hours we drove without my having the least clue as to where
we were going. Sometimes the rattle of the stones told of a paved causeway,
and at others our smooth, silent course suggested asphalt; but, save by this
variation in sound, there was nothing at all which could in the remotest way
help me to form a guess as to where we were. The paper over each window was
impenetrable to light, and a blue curtain was drawn across the glass work in
front. It was a quarter-past seven when we left Pall Mall, and my watch showed
me that it was ten minutes to nine when we at last came to a standstill. My
companion let down the window, and I caught a glimpse of a low, arched
doorway with a lamp burning above it. As I was hurried from the carriage it
swung open, and I found myself inside the house, with a vague impression of a
lawn and trees on each side of me as I entered. Whether these were private
grounds, however, or bona-fide country was more than I could possibly
venture to say.
“There was a colored gas-lamp inside which was turned so low that I could see
little save that the hall was of some size and hung with pictures. In the dim light
I could make out that the person who had opened the door was a small, mean-
looking, middle-aged man with rounded shoulders. As he turned towards us the
glint of the light showed me that he was wearing glasses.
“‘Yes.’
“‘Well done, well done! No ill-will, Mr. Melas, I hope, but we could not get on
without you. If you deal fair with us you’ll not regret it, but if you try any tricks,
God help you!’ He spoke in a nervous, jerky fashion, and with little giggling
laughs in between, but somehow he impressed me with fear more than the
other.
“‘What do you want with me?’ I asked.
“‘Only to ask a few questions of a Greek gentleman who is visiting us, and to
let us have the answers. But say no more than you are told to say, or—’ here
came the nervous giggle again—’you had better never have been born.’
“As he spoke he opened a door and showed the way into a room which
appeared to be very richly furnished, but again the only light was afforded by a
single lamp half-turned down. The chamber was certainly large, and the way in
which my feet sank into the carpet as I stepped across it told me of its richness.
I caught glimpses of velvet chairs, a high white marble mantel-piece, and what
seemed to be a suit of Japanese armor at one side of it. There was a chair just
under the lamp, and the elderly man motioned that I should sit in it. The
younger had left us, but he suddenly returned through another door, leading
with him a gentleman clad in some sort of loose dressing-gown who moved
slowly towards us. As he came into the circle of dim light which enables me to
see him more clearly I was thrilled with horror at his appearance. He was
deadly pale and terribly emaciated, with the protruding, brilliant eyes of a man
whose spirit was greater than his strength. But what shocked me more than any
signs of physical weakness was that his face was grotesquely criss-crossed with
sticking-plaster, and that one large pad of it was fastened over his mouth.
“‘Have you the slate, Harold?’ cried the older man, as this strange being fell
rather than sat down into a chair. ‘Are his hands loose? Now, then, give him
the pencil. You are to ask the questions, Mr. Melas, and he will write the
answers. Ask him first of all whether he is prepared to sign the papers?’
“‘Your fate will be upon your own head. How long have you been here?’
“‘You are not doing her any service. What is your name?’
“‘You shall see her if you sign. Where are you from?’
“Another five minutes, Mr. Holmes, and I should have wormed out the whole
story under their very noses. My very next question might have cleared the
matter up, but at that instant the door opened and a woman stepped into the
room. I could not see her clearly enough to know more than that she was tall
and graceful, with black hair, and clad in some sort of loose white gown.
“‘Harold,’ said she, speaking English with a broken accent. ‘I could not stay
away longer. It is so lonely up there with only—Oh, my God, it is Paul!’
“These last words were in Greek, and at the same instant the man with a
convulsive effort tore the plaster from his lips, and screaming out ‘Sophy!
Sophy!’ rushed into the woman’s arms. Their embrace was but for an instant,
however, for the younger man seized the woman and pushed her out of the
room, while the elder easily overpowered his emaciated victim, and dragged
him away through the other door. For a moment I was left alone in the room,
and I sprang to my feet with some vague idea that I might in some way get a
clue to what this house was in which I found myself. Fortunately, however, I
took no steps, for looking up I saw that the older man was standing in the
door-way with his eyes fixed upon me.
“‘That will do, Mr. Melas,’ said he. ‘You perceive that we have taken you into
our confidence over some very private business. We should not have troubled
you, only that our friend who speaks Greek and who began these negotiations
has been forced to return to the East. It was quite necessary for us to find
some one to take his place, and we were fortunate in hearing of your powers.’
“I bowed.
“‘There are five sovereigns here,’ said he, walking up to me, ‘which will, I hope,
be a sufficient fee. But remember,’ he added, tapping me lightly on the chest
and giggling, ‘if you speak to a human soul about this—one human soul,
mind—well, may God have mercy upon your soul!”
“I cannot tell you the loathing and horror with which this insignificant-looking
man inspired me. I could see him better now as the lamp-light shone upon him.
His features were peaky and sallow, and his little pointed beard was thready and
ill-nourished. He pushed his face forward as he spoke and his lips and eyelids
were continually twitching like a man with St. Vitus’s dance. I could not help
thinking that his strange, catchy little laugh was also a symptom of some
nervous malady. The terror of his face lay in his eyes, however, steel gray, and
glistening coldly with a malignant, inexorable cruelty in their depths.
“‘We shall know if you speak of this,’ said he. ‘We have our own means of
information. Now you will find the carriage waiting, and my friend will see you
on your way.’
“I was hurried through the hall and into the vehicle, again obtaining that
momentary glimpse of trees and a garden. Mr. Latimer followed closely at my
heels, and took his place opposite to me without a word. In silence we again
drove for an interminable distance with the windows raised, until at last, just
after midnight, the carriage pulled up.
“‘You will get down here, Mr. Melas,’ said my companion. ‘I am sorry to leave
you so far from your house, but there is no alternative. Any attempt upon your
part to follow the carriage can only end in injury to yourself.’
“He opened the door as he spoke, and I had hardly time to spring out when the
coachman lashed the horse and the carriage rattled away. I looked around me in
astonishment. I was on some sort of a heathy common mottled over with dark
clumps of furze-bushes. Far away stretched a line of houses, with a light here
and there in the upper windows. On the other side I saw the red signal-lamps
of a railway.
“The carriage which had brought me was already out of sight. I stood gazing
round and wondering where on earth I might be, when I saw some one coming
towards me in the darkness. As he came up to me I made out that he was a
railway porter.
“‘If you walk on a mile or so to Clapham Junction,’ said he, ‘you’ll just be in
time for the last to Victoria.’
“So that was the end of my adventure, Mr. Holmes. I do not know where I
was, nor whom I spoke with, nor anything save what I have told you. But I
know that there is foul play going on, and I want to help that unhappy man if I
can. I told the whole story to Mr. Mycroft Holmes next morning, and
subsequently to the police.”
We all sat in silence for some little time after listening to this extraordinary
narrative. Then Sherlock looked across at his brother.
Mycroft picked up the Daily News, which was lying on the side-table.
“‘Anybody supplying any information to the whereabouts of a Greek
gentleman named Paul Kratides, from Athens, who is unable to speak English,
will be rewarded. A similar reward paid to any one giving information about a
Greek lady whose first name is Sophy. X 2473.’ That was in all the dailies. No
answer.”
“Sherlock has all the energy of the family,” said Mycroft, turning to me. “Well,
you take the case up by all means, and let me know if you do any good.”
“Certainly,” answered my friend, rising from his chair. “I’ll let you know, and
Mr. Melas also. In the meantime, Mr. Melas, I should certainly be on my guard,
if I were you, for of course they must know through these advertisements that
you have betrayed them.”
“You see, Watson,” he remarked, “our evening has been by no means wasted.
Some of my most interesting cases have come to me in this way through
Mycroft. The problem which we have just listened to, although it can admit of
but one explanation, has still some distinguishing features.”
“It seemed to me to be obvious that this Greek girl had been carried off by the
young Englishman named Harold Latimer.”
“Carried off from where?”
“Athens, perhaps.”
Sherlock Holmes shook his head. “This young man could not talk a word of
Greek. The lady could talk English fairly well. Inference—that she had been in
England some little time, but he had not been in Greece.”
“Well, then, we will presume that she had come on a visit to England, and that
this Harold had persuaded her to fly with him.”
“Excellent, Watson!” cried Holmes. “I really fancy that you are not far from the
truth. You see that we hold all the cards, and we have only to fear some sudden
act of violence on their part. If they give us time we must have them.”
“Well, if our conjecture is correct and the girl’s name is or was Sophy Kratides,
we should have no difficulty in tracing her. That must be our main hope, for
the brother is, of course, a complete stranger. It is clear that some time has
elapsed since this Harold established these relations with the girl—some weeks,
at any rate—since the brother in Greece has had time to hear of it and come
across. If they have been living in the same place during this time, it is probable
that we shall have some answer to Mycroft’s advertisement.”
We had reached our house in Baker Street while we had been talking. Holmes
ascended the stair first, and as he opened the door of our room he gave a start
of surprise. Looking over his shoulder, I was equally astonished. His brother
Mycroft was sitting smoking in the arm-chair.
“Come in, Sherlock! Come in, sir,” said he blandly, smiling at our surprised
faces. “You don’t expect such energy from me, do you, Sherlock? But
somehow this case attracts me.”
“Ah!”
“Here it is,” said he, “written with a J pen on royal cream paper by a middle-
aged man with a weak constitution. ‘Sir,’ he says, ‘in answer to your
advertisement of to-day’s date, I beg to inform you that I know the young lady
in question very well. If you should care to call upon me I could give you some
particulars as to her painful history. She is living at present at The Myrtles,
Beckenham. Yours faithfully, J. Davenport.’
“He writes from Lower Brixton,” said Mycroft Holmes. “Do you not think that
we might drive to him now, Sherlock, and learn these particulars?”
“My dear Mycroft, the brother’s life is more valuable than the sister’s story. I
think we should call at Scotland Yard for Inspector Gregson, and go straight
out to Beckenham. We know that a man is being done to death, and every hour
may be vital.”
“Better pick up Mr. Melas on our way,” I suggested. “We may need an
interpreter.”
“Excellent,” said Sherlock Holmes. “Send the boy for a four-wheeler, and we
shall be off at once.” He opened the table-drawer as he spoke, and I noticed
that he slipped his revolver into his pocket. “Yes,” said he, in answer to my
glance; “I should say from what we have heard, that we are dealing with a
particularly dangerous gang.”
It was almost dark before we found ourselves in Pall Mall, at the rooms of Mr.
Melas. A gentleman had just called for him, and he was gone.
“I don’t know, sir,” answered the woman who had opened the door; “I only
know that he drove away with the gentleman in a carriage.”
“No, sir.”
“Oh, no, sir. He was a little gentleman, with glasses, thin in the face, but very
pleasant in his ways, for he was laughing all the time that he was talking.”
Our hope was that, by taking train, we might get to Beckenham as soon or
sooner than the carriage. On reaching Scotland Yard, however, it was more
than an hour before we could get Inspector Gregson and comply with the legal
formalities which would enable us to enter the house. It was a quarter to ten
before we reached London Bridge, and half past before the four of us alighted
on the Beckenham platform. A drive of half a mile brought us to The
Myrtles—a large, dark house standing back from the road in its own grounds.
Here we dismissed our cab, and made our way up the drive together.
“The windows are all dark,” remarked the inspector. “The house seems
deserted.”
“Our birds are flown and the nest empty,” said Holmes.
“Why do you say so?”
“A carriage heavily loaded with luggage has passed out during the last hour.”
The inspector laughed. “I saw the wheel-tracks in the light of the gate-lamp,
but where does the luggage come in?”
“You may have observed the same wheel-tracks going the other way. But the
outward-bound ones were very much deeper—so much so that we can say for
a certainty that there was a very considerable weight on the carriage.”
“You get a trifle beyond me there,” said the inspector, shrugging his shoulder.
“It will not be an easy door to force, but we will try if we cannot make some
one hear us.”
He hammered loudly at the knocker and pulled at the bell, but without any
success. Holmes had slipped away, but he came back in a few minutes.
“It is a mercy that you are on the side of the force, and not against it, Mr.
Holmes,” remarked the inspector, as he noted the clever way in which my
friend had forced back the catch. “Well, I think that under the circumstances
we may enter without an invitation.”
One after the other we made our way into a large apartment, which was
evidently that in which Mr. Melas had found himself. The inspector had lit his
lantern, and by its light we could see the two doors, the curtain, the lamp, and
the suit of Japanese mail as he had described them. On the table lay two
glasses, and empty brandy-bottle, and the remains of a meal.
We all stood still and listened. A low moaning sound was coming from
somewhere over our heads. Holmes rushed to the door and out into the hall.
The dismal noise came from upstairs. He dashed up, the inspector and I at his
heels, while his brother Mycroft followed as quickly as his great bulk would
permit.
Three doors faced up upon the second floor, and it was from the central of
these that the sinister sounds were issuing, sinking sometimes into a dull
mumble and rising again into a shrill whine. It was locked, but the key had been
left on the outside. Holmes flung open the door and rushed in, but he was out
again in an instant, with his hand to his throat.
Peering in, we could see that the only light in the room came from a dull blue
flame which flickered from a small brass tripod in the centre. It threw a livid,
unnatural circle upon the floor, while in the shadows beyond we saw the vague
loom of two figures which crouched against the wall. From the open door
there reeked a horrible poisonous exhalation which set us gasping and
coughing. Holmes rushed to the top of the stairs to draw in the fresh air, and
then, dashing into the room, he threw up the window and hurled the brazen
tripod out into the garden.
“We can enter in a minute,” he gasped, darting out again. “Where is a candle? I
doubt if we could strike a match in that atmosphere. Hold the light at the door
and we shall get them out, Mycroft, now!”
With a rush we got to the poisoned men and dragged them out into the well-lit
hall. Both of them were blue-lipped and insensible, with swollen, congested
faces and protruding eyes. Indeed, so distorted were their features that, save for
his black beard and stout figure, we might have failed to recognize in one of
them the Greek interpreter who had parted from us only a few hours before at
the Diogenes Club. His hands and feet were securely strapped together, and he
bore over one eye the marks of a violent blow. The other, who was secured in a
similar fashion, was a tall man in the last stage of emaciation, with several strips
of sticking-plaster arranged in a grotesque pattern over his face. He had ceased
to moan as we laid him down, and a glance showed me that for him at least our
aid had come too late. Mr. Melas, however, still lived, and in less than an hour,
with the aid of ammonia and brandy I had the satisfaction of seeing him open
his eyes, and of knowing that my hand had drawn him back from that dark
valley in which all paths meet.
It was a simple story which he had to tell, and one which did but confirm our
own deductions. His visitor, on entering his rooms, had drawn a life-preserver
from his sleeve, and had so impressed him with the fear of instant and
inevitable death that he had kidnapped him for the second time. Indeed, it was
almost mesmeric, the effect which this giggling ruffian had produced upon the
unfortunate linguist, for he could not speak of him save with trembling hands
and a blanched cheek. He had been taken swiftly to Beckenham, and had acted
as interpreter in a second interview, even more dramatic than the first, in which
the two Englishmen had menaced their prisoner with instant death if he did
not comply with their demands. Finally, finding him proof against every threat,
they had hurled him back into his prison, and after reproaching Melas with his
treachery, which appeared from the newspaper advertisement, they had
stunned him with a blow from a stick, and he remembered nothing more until
he found us bending over him.
And this was the singular case of the Grecian Interpreter, the explanation of
which is still involved in some mystery. We were able to find out, by
communicating with the gentleman who had answered the advertisement, that
the unfortunate young lady came of a wealthy Grecian family, and that she had
been on a visit to some friends in England. While there she had met a young
man named Harold Latimer, who had acquired an ascendancy over he and had
eventually persuaded her to fly with him. Her friends, shocked at the event, had
contented themselves with informing her brother at Athens, and had then
washed their hands of the matter. The brother, on his arrival in England, had
imprudently placed himself in the power of Latimer and of his associate, whose
name was Wilson Kemp—a man of the foulest antecedents. These two, finding
that through his ignorance of the language he was helpless in their hands, had
kept him a prisoner, and had endeavored by cruelty and starvation to make him
sign away his own and his sister’s property. They had kept him in the house
without the girl’s knowledge, and the plaster over the face had been for the
purpose of making recognition difficult in case she should ever catch a glimpse
of him. Her feminine perception, however, had instantly seen through the
disguise when, on the occasion of the interpreter’s visit, she had seen him for
the first time. The poor girl, however, was herself a prisoner, for there was no
one about the house except the man who acted as coachman, and his wife,
both of whom were tools of the conspirators. Finding that their secret was out,
and that their prisoner was not to be coerced, the two villains with the girl had
fled away at a few hours’ notice from the furnished house which they had
hired, having first, as they thought, taken vengeance both upon the man who
had defied and the one who had betrayed them.
During my school-days I had been intimately associated with a lad named Percy
Phelps, who was of much the same age as myself, though he was two classes
ahead of me. He was a very brilliant boy, and carried away every prize which
the school had to offer, finished his exploits by winning a scholarship which
sent him on to continue his triumphant career at Cambridge. He was, I
remember, extremely well connected, and even when we were all little boys
together we knew that his mother’s brother was Lord Holdhurst, the great
conservative politician. This gaudy relationship did him little good at school.
On the contrary, it seemed rather a piquant thing to us to chevy him about the
playground and hit him over the shins with a wicket. But it was another thing
when he came out into the world. I heard vaguely that his abilities and the
influences which he commanded had won him a good position at the Foreign
Office, and then he passed completely out of my mind until the following letter
recalled his existence:
Briarbrae, Woking. My dear Watson,—I have no doubt that you can remember
“Tadpole” Phelps, who was in the fifth form when you were in the third. It is
possible even that you may have heard that through my uncle’s influence I
obtained a good appointment at the Foreign Office, and that I was in a
situation of trust and honor until a horrible misfortune came suddenly to blast
my career.
There is no use writing of the details of that dreadful event. In the event of
your acceding to my request it is probably that I shall have to narrate them to
you. I have only just recovered from nine weeks of brain-fever, and am still
exceedingly weak. Do you think that you could bring your friend Mr. Holmes
down to see me? I should like to have his opinion of the case, though the
authorities assure me that nothing more can be done. Do try to bring him
down, and as soon as possible. Every minute seems an hour while I live in this
state of horrible suspense. Assure him that if I have not asked his advice sooner
it was not because I did not appreciate his talents, but because I have been off
my head ever since the blow fell. Now I am clear again, though I dare not think
of it too much for fear of a relapse. I am still so weak that I have to write, as
you see, by dictating. Do try to bring him.
Percy Phelps.
There was something that touched me as I read this letter, something pitiable in
the reiterated appeals to bring Holmes. So moved was I that even had it been a
difficult matter I should have tried it, but of course I knew well that Holmes
loved his art, so that he was ever as ready to bring his aid as his client could be
to receive it. My wife agreed with me that not a moment should be lost in
laying the matter before him, and so within an hour of breakfast-time I found
myself back once more in the old rooms in Baker Street.
Holmes was seated at his side-table clad in his dressing-gown, and working
hard over a chemical investigation. A large curved retort was boiling furiously
in the bluish flame of a Bunsen burner, and the distilled drops were condensing
into a two-litre measure. My friend hardly glanced up as I entered, and I, seeing
that his investigation must be of importance, seated myself in an arm-chair and
waited. He dipped into this bottle or that, drawing out a few drops of each with
his glass pipette, and finally brought a test-tube containing a solution over to
the table. In his right hand he held a slip of litmus-paper.
“You come at a crisis, Watson,” said he. “If this paper remains blue, all is well.
If it turns red, it means a man’s life.” He dipped it into the test-tube and it
flushed at once into a dull, dirty crimson. “Hum! I thought as much!” he cried.
“I will be at your service in an instant, Watson. You will find tobacco in the
Persian slipper.” He turned to his desk and scribbled off several telegrams,
which were handed over to the page-boy. Then he threw himself down into the
chair opposite, and drew up his knees until his fingers clasped round his long,
thin shins.
“A very commonplace little murder,” said he. “You’ve got something better, I
fancy. You are the stormy petrel of crime, Watson. What is it?”
I handed him the letter, which he read with the most concentrated attention.
“It does not tell us very much, does it?” he remarked, as he handed it back to
me.
“Hardly anything.”
“Precisely. It is a woman’s.”
“I am so glad that you have come,” said he, shaking our hands with effusion.
“Percy has been inquiring for you all morning. Ah, poor old chap, he clings to
any straw! His father and his mother asked me to see you, for the mere
mention of the subject is very painful to them.”
“We have had no details yet,” observed Holmes. “I perceive that you are not
yourself a member of the family.”
“Of course you saw the J H monogram on my locket,” said he. “For a moment
I thought you had done something clever. Joseph Harrison is my name, and as
Percy is to marry my sister Annie I shall at least be a relation by marriage. You
will find my sister in his room, for she has nursed him hand-and-foot this two
months back. Perhaps we’d better go in at once, for I know how impatient he
is.”
The chamber in which we were shown was on the same floor as the drawing-
room. It was furnished partly as a sitting and partly as a bedroom, with flowers
arranged daintily in every nook and corner. A young man, very pale and worn,
was lying upon a sofa near the open window, through which came the rich
scent of the garden and the balmy summer air. A woman was sitting beside
him, who rose as we entered.
He clutched her hand to detain her. “How are you, Watson?” said he, cordially.
“I should never have known you under that moustache, and I dare say you
would not be prepared to swear to me. This I presume is your celebrated
friend, Mr. Sherlock Holmes?”
I introduced him in a few words, and we both sat down. The stout young man
had left us, but his sister still remained with her hand in that of the invalid. She
was a striking-looking woman, a little short and thick for symmetry, but with a
beautiful olive complexion, large, dark, Italian eyes, and a wealth of deep black
hair. Her rich tints made the white face of her companion the more worn and
haggard by the contrast.
“I won’t waste your time,” said he, raising himself upon the sofa. “I’ll plunge
into the matter without further preamble. I was a happy and successful man,
Mr. Holmes, and on the eve of being married, when a sudden and dreadful
misfortune wrecked all my prospects in life.
“I was, as Watson may have told you, in the Foreign Office, and through the
influences of my uncle, Lord Holdhurst, I rose rapidly to a responsible
position. When my uncle became foreign minister in this administration he
gave me several missions of trust, and as I always brought them to a successful
conclusion, he came at last to have the utmost confidence in my ability and
tact.
“Nearly ten weeks ago—to be more accurate, on the 23d of May—he called me
into his private room, and, after complimenting me on the good work which I
had done, he informed me that he had a new commission of trust for me to
execute.
“‘This,’ said he, taking a gray roll of paper from his bureau, ‘is the original of
that secret treaty between England and Italy of which, I regret to say, some
rumors have already got into the public press. It is of enormous importance
that nothing further should leak out. The French or the Russian embassy would
pay an immense sum to learn the contents of these papers. They should not
leave my bureau were it not that it is absolutely necessary to have them copied.
You have a desk in your office?”
“‘Yes, sir.’
“‘Then take the treaty and lock it up there. I shall give directions that you may
remain behind when the others go, so that you may copy it at your leisure
without fear of being overlooked. When you have finished, relock both the
original and the draft in the desk, and hand them over to me personally to-
morrow morning.’
“I did exactly what he indicated, and waited until the other clerks had departed.
One of them in my room, Charles Gorot, had some arrears of work to make
up, so I left him there and went out to dine. When I returned he was gone. I
was anxious to hurry my work, for I knew that Joseph—the Mr. Harrison
whom you saw just now—was in town, and that he would travel down to
Woking by the eleven-o’clock train, and I wanted if possible to catch it.
“When I came to examine the treaty I saw at once that it was of such
importance that my uncle had been guilty of no exaggeration in what he had
said. Without going into details, I may say that it defined the position of Great
Britain towards the Triple Alliance, and fore-shadowed the policy which this
country would pursue in the event of the French fleet gaining a complete
ascendancy over that of Italy in the Mediterranean. The questions treated in it
were purely naval. At the end were the signatures of the high dignitaries who
had signed it. I glanced my eyes over it, and then settled down to my task of
copying.
“It was a long document, written in the French language, and containing
twenty-six separate articles. I copied as quickly as I could, but at nine o’clock I
had only done nine articles, and it seemed hopeless for me to attempt to catch
my train. I was feeling drowsy and stupid, partly from my dinner and also from
the effects of a long day’s work. A cup of coffee would clear my brain. A
commissionnaire remains all night in a little lodge at the foot of the stairs, and
is in the habit of making coffee at his spirit-lamp for any of the officials who
may be working over time. I rang the bell, therefore, to summon him.
“To my surprise, it was a woman who answered the summons, a large, coarse-
faced, elderly woman, in an apron. She explained that she was the
commissionnaire’s wife, who did the charing, and I gave her the order for the
coffee.
“I wrote two more articles and then, feeling more drowsy than ever, I rose and
walked up and down the room to stretch my legs. My coffee had not yet come,
and I wondered what was the cause of the delay could be. Opening the door, I
started down the corridor to find out. There was a straight passage, dimly
lighted, which led from the room in which I had been working, and was the
only exit from it. It ended in a curving staircase, with the commissionnaire’s
lodge in the passage at the bottom. Half way down this staircase is a small
landing, with another passage running into it at right angles. This second one
leads by means of a second small stair to a side door, used by servants, and also
as a short cut by clerks when coming from Charles Street. Here is a rough chart
of the place.”
“Thank you. I think that I quite follow you,” said Sherlock Holmes.
“It is of the utmost importance that you should notice this point. I went down
the stairs and into the hall, where I found the commissionnaire fast asleep in
his box, with the kettle boiling furiously upon the spirit-lamp. I took off the
kettle and blew out the lamp, for the water was spurting over the floor. Then I
put out my hand and was about to shake the man, who was still sleeping
soundly, when a bell over his head rang loudly, and he woke with a start.
“‘I was boiling the kettle when I fell asleep, sir.’ He looked at me and then up at
the still quivering bell with an ever-growing astonishment upon his face.
“‘If you was here, sir, then who rang the bell?’ he asked.
Holmes sat up in his chair and rubbed his hands. I could see that the problem
was entirely to his heart. “Pray, what did you do then?” he murmured.
“I recognized in an instant that the thief must have come up the stairs from the
side door. Of course I must have met him if he had come the other way.”
“You were satisfied that he could not have been concealed in the room all the
time, or in the corridor which you have just described as dimly lighted?”
“It is absolutely impossible. A rat could not conceal himself either in the room
or the corridor. There is no cover at all.”
“That is of enormous importance,” said Holmes, making a note upon his shirt-
cuff.
“The night was very dark, and a thin, warm rain was falling. There was no one
in Charles Street, but a great traffic was going on, as usual, in Whitehall, at the
extremity. We rushed along the pavement, bare-headed as we were, and at the
far corner we found a policeman standing.
“‘A robbery has been committed,’ I gasped. ‘A document of immense value has
been stolen from the Foreign Office. Has any one passed this way?’
“‘I have been standing here for a quarter of an hour, sir,’ said he; ‘only one
person has passed during that time—a woman, tall and elderly, with a Paisley
shawl.’
“‘Ah, that is only my wife,’ cried the commissionnaire; ‘has no one else passed?’
“‘No one.’
“‘Then it must be the other way that the thief took,’ cried the fellow, tugging at
my sleeve.
“‘But I was not satisfied, and the attempts which he made to draw me away
increased my suspicions.
“‘I don’t know, sir. I noticed her pass, but I had no special reason for watching
her. She seemed to be in a hurry.’
“‘You’re only wasting your time, sir, and every minute now is of importance,’
cried the commissionnaire; ‘take my word for it that my old woman has
nothing to do with it, and come down to the other end of the street. Well, if
you won’t, I will.’ And with that he rushed off in the other direction.
“But I was after him in an instant and caught him by the sleeve.
“‘16 Ivy Lane, Brixton,’ he answered. ‘But don’t let yourself be drawn away
upon a false scent, Mr. Phelps. Come to the other end of the street and let us
see if we can hear of anything.’
“Nothing was to be lost by following his advice. With the policeman we both
hurried down, but only to find the street full of traffic, many people coming
and going, but all only too eager to get to a place of safety upon so wet a night.
There was no lounger who could tell us who had passed.
“Then we returned to the office, and searched the stairs and the passage
without result. The corridor which led to the room was laid down with a kind
of creamy linoleum which shows an impression very easily. We examined it
very carefully, but found no outline of any footmark.”
“How is it, then, that the woman who came into the room about nine left no
traces with her muddy boots?”
“I am glad you raised the point. It occurred to me at the time. The charwomen
are in the habit of taking off their boots at the commissionnaire’s office, and
putting on list slippers.”
“That is very clear. There were no marks, then, though the night was a wet
one? The chain of events is certainly one of extraordinary interest. What did
you do next?
“We examined the room also. There is no possibility of a secret door, and the
windows are quite thirty feet from the ground. Both of them were fastened on
the inside. The carpet prevents any possibility of a trap-door, and the ceiling is
of the ordinary whitewashed kind. I will pledge my life that whoever stole my
papers could only have come through the door.”
“They use none. There is a stove. The bell-rope hangs from the wire just to the
right of my desk. Whoever rang it must have come right up to the desk to do it.
But why should any criminal wish to ring the bell? It is a most insoluble
mystery.”
“Certainly the incident was unusual. What were your next steps? You examined
the room, I presume, to see if the intruder had left any traces—any cigar-end or
dropped glove or hairpin or other trifle?”
“There was nothing of the sort.”
“No smell?”
“Ah, a scent of tobacco would have been worth a great deal to us in such an
investigation.”
“I never smoke myself, so I think I should have observed it if there had been
any smell of tobacco. There was absolutely no clue of any kind. The only
tangible fact was that the commissionnaire’s wife—Mrs. Tangey was the
name—had hurried out of the place. He could give no explanation save that it
was about the time when the woman always went home. The policeman and I
agreed that our best plan would be to seize the woman before she could get rid
of the papers, presuming that she had them.
“The alarm had reached Scotland Yard by this time, and Mr. Forbes, the
detective, came round at once and took up the case with a great deal of energy.
We hired a hansom, and in half an hour we were at the address which had been
given to us. A young woman opened the door, who proved to be Mrs. Tangey’s
eldest daughter. Her mother had not come back yet, and we were shown into
the front room to wait.
“About ten minutes later a knock came at the door, and here we made the one
serious mistake for which I blame myself. Instead of opening the door
ourselves, we allowed the girl to do so. We heard her say, ‘Mother, there are
two men in the house waiting to see you,’ and an instant afterwards we heard
the patter of feet rushing down the passage. Forbes flung open the door, and
we both ran into the back room or kitchen, but the woman had got there
before us. She stared at us with defiant eyes, and then, suddenly recognizing
me, an expression of absolute astonishment came over her face.
“‘Come, come, who did you think we were when you ran away from us?’ asked
my companion.
“‘I thought you were the brokers,’ said she, ‘we have had some trouble with a
tradesman.’
“‘That’s not quite good enough,’ answered Forbes. ‘We have reason to believe
that you have taken a paper of importance from the Foreign Office, and that
you ran in here to dispose of it. You must come back with us to Scotland Yard
to be searched.’
“It was in vain that she protested and resisted. A four-wheeler was brought,
and we all three drove back in it. We had first made an examination of the
kitchen, and especially of the kitchen fire, to see whether she might have made
away with the papers during the instant that she was alone. There were no
signs, however, of any ashes or scraps. When we reached Scotland Yard she
was handed over at once to the female searcher. I waited in an agony of
suspense until she came back with her report. There were no signs of the
papers.
“Then for the first time the horror of my situation came in its full force.
Hitherto I had been acting, and action had numbed thought. I had been so
confident of regaining the treaty at once that I had not dared to think of what
would be the consequence if I failed to do so. But now there was nothing more
to be done, and I had leisure to realize my position. It was horrible. Watson
there would tell you that I was a nervous, sensitive boy at school. It is my
nature. I thought of my uncle and of his colleagues in the Cabinet, of the
shame which I had brought upon him, upon myself, upon every one connected
with me. What though I was the victim of an extraordinary accident? No
allowance is made for accidents where diplomatic interests are at stake. I was
ruined, shamefully, hopelessly ruined. I don’t know what I did. I fancy I must
have made a scene. I have a dim recollection of a group of officials who
crowded round me, endeavoring to soothe me. One of them drove down with
me to Waterloo, and saw me into the Woking train. I believe that he would
have come all the way had it not been that Dr. Ferrier, who lives near me, was
going down by that very train. The doctor most kindly took charge of me, and
it was well he did so, for I had a fit in the station, and before we reached home
I was practically a raving maniac.
“You can imagine the state of things here when they were roused from their
beds by the doctor’s ringing and found me in this condition. Poor Annie here
and my mother were broken-hearted. Dr. Ferrier had just heard enough from
the detective at the station to be able to give an idea of what had happened, and
his story did not mend matters. It was evident to all that I was in for a long
illness, so Joseph was bundled out of this cheery bedroom, and it was turned
into a sick-room for me. Here I have lain, Mr. Holmes, for over nine weeks,
unconscious, and raving with brain-fever. If it had not been for Miss Harrison
here and for the doctor’s care I should not be speaking to you now. She has
nursed me by day and a hired nurse has looked after me by night, for in my
mad fits I was capable of anything. Slowly my reason has cleared, but it is only
during the last three days that my memory has quite returned. Sometimes I
wish that it never had. The first thing that I did was to wire to Mr. Forbes, who
had the case in hand. He came out, and assures me that, though everything has
been done, no trace of a clue has been discovered. The commissionnaire and
his wife have been examined in every way without any light being thrown upon
the matter. The suspicions of the police then rested upon young Gorot, who, as
you may remember, stayed over time in the office that night. His remaining
behind and his French name were really the only two points which could
suggest suspicion; but, as a matter of fact, I did not begin work until he had
gone, and his people are of Huguenot extraction, but as English in sympathy
and tradition as you and I are. Nothing was found to implicate him in any way,
and there the matter dropped. I turn to you, Mr. Holmes, as absolutely my last
hope. If you fail me, then my honor as well as my position are forever
forfeited.”
The invalid sank back upon his cushions, tired out by this long recital, while his
nurse poured him out a glass of some stimulating medicine. Holmes sat silently,
with his head thrown back and his eyes closed, in an attitude which might seem
listless to a stranger, but which I knew betokened the most intense self-
absorption.
“You statement has been so explicit,” said he at last, “that you have really left
me very few questions to ask. There is one of the very utmost importance,
however. Did you tell any one that you had this special task to perform?”
“No one.”
“No. I had not been back to Woking between getting the order and executing
the commission.”
“None.”
“Still, of course, if you said nothing to any one about the treaty these inquiries
are irrelevant.”
“I said nothing.”
“What regiment?”
“Thank you. I have no doubt I can get details from Forbes. The authorities are
excellent at amassing facts, though they do not always use them to advantage.
What a lovely thing a rose is!”
He walked past the couch to the open window, and held up the drooping stalk
of a moss-rose, looking down at the dainty blend of crimson and green. It was
a new phase of his character to me, for I had never before seen him show any
keen interest in natural objects.
Percy Phelps and his nurse looked at Holmes during this demonstration with
surprise and a good deal of disappointment written upon their faces. He had
fallen into a reverie, with the moss-rose between his fingers. It had lasted some
minutes before the young lady broke in upon it.
“Do you see any prospect of solving this mystery, Mr. Holmes?” she asked,
with a touch of asperity in her voice.
“Oh, the mystery!” he answered, coming back with a start to the realities of life.
“Well, it would be absurd to deny that the case is a very abstruse and
complicated one, but I can promise you that I will look into the matter and let
you know any points which may strike me.”
“You have furnished me with seven, but, of course, I must test them before I
can pronounce upon their value.”
“I suspect myself.”
“What!”
“Your advice is very excellent, Miss Harrison,” said Holmes, rising. “I think,
Watson, we cannot do better. Do not allow yourself to indulge in false hopes,
Mr. Phelps. The affair is a very tangled one.”
“Well, I’ll come out by the same train to-morrow, though it’s more than likely
that my report will be a negative one.”
“God bless you for promising to come,” cried our client. “It gives me fresh life
to know that something is being done. By the way, I have had a letter from
Lord Holdhurst.”
“He was cold, but not harsh. I dare say my severe illness prevented him from
being that. He repeated that the matter was of the utmost importance, and
added that no steps would be taken about my future—by which he means, of
course, my dismissal—until my health was restored and I had an opportunity of
repairing my misfortune.”
“Well, that was reasonable and considerate,” said Holmes. “Come, Watson, for
we have a good day’s work before us in town.”
Mr. Joseph Harrison drove us down to the station, and we were soon whirling
up in a Portsmouth train. Holmes was sunk in profound thought, and hardly
opened his mouth until we had passed Clapham Junction.
“It’s a very cheery thing to come into London by any of these lines which run
high, and allow you to look down upon the houses like this.”
I thought he was joking, for the view was sordid enough, but he soon explained
himself.
“Look at those big, isolated clumps of building rising up above the slates, like
brick islands in a lead-colored sea.”
“The board-schools.”
“Nor should I, but we are bound to take every possibility into account. The
poor devil has certainly got himself into very deep water, and it’s a question
whether we shall ever be able to get him ashore. What did you think of Miss
Harrison?”
“Yes, but she is a good sort, or I am mistaken. She and her brother are the only
children of an iron-master somewhere up Northumberland way. He got
engaged to her when traveling last winter, and she came down to be introduced
to his people, with her brother as escort. Then came the smash, and she stayed
on to nurse her lover, while brother Joseph, finding himself pretty snug, stayed
on too. I’ve been making a few independent inquiries, you see. But to-day must
be a day of inquiries.”
“I was going to say that my practice could get along very well for a day or two,
since it is the slackest time in the year.”
“Excellent,” said he, recovering his good-humor. “Then we’ll look into this
matter together. I think that we should begin by seeing Forbes. He can
probably tell us all the details we want until we know from what side the case is
to be approached.”
“Well, we have several, but we can only test their value by further inquiry. The
most difficult crime to track is the one which is purposeless. Now this is not
purposeless. Who is it who profits by it? There is the French ambassador, there
is the Russian, there is whoever might sell it to either of these, and there is
Lord Holdhurst.”
“Lord Holdhurst!”
“It is a possibility and we cannot afford to disregard it. We shall see the noble
lord to-day and find out if he can tell us anything. Meanwhile I have already set
inquiries on foot.”
“Already?”
“Yes, I sent wires from Woking station to every evening paper in London. This
advertisement will appear in each of them.”
“If not, there is no harm done. But if Mr. Phelps is correct in stating that there
is no hiding-place either in the room or the corridors, then the person must
have come from outside. If he came from outside on so wet a night, and yet
left no trace of damp upon the linoleum, which was examined within a few
minutes of his passing, then it is exceeding probable that he came in a cab. Yes,
I think that we may safely deduce a cab.”
“That is one of the clues of which I spoke. It may lead us to something. And
then, of course, there is the bell—which is the most distinctive feature of the
case. Why should the bell ring? Was it the thief who did it out of bravado? Or
was it some one who was with the thief who did it in order to prevent the
crime? Or was it an accident? Or was it—?” He sank back into the state of
intense and silent thought from which he had emerged; but it seemed to me,
accustomed as I was to his every mood, that some new possibility had dawned
suddenly upon him.
It was twenty past three when we reached our terminus, and after a hasty
luncheon at the buffet we pushed on at once to Scotland Yard. Holmes had
already wired to Forbes, and we found him waiting to receive us—a small, foxy
man with a sharp but by no means amiable expression. He was decidedly frigid
in his manner to us, especially when he heard the errand upon which we had
come.
“I’ve heard of your methods before now, Mr. Holmes,” said he, tartly. “You
are ready enough to use all the information that the police can lay at your
disposal, and then you try to finish the case yourself and bring discredit on
them.”
“On the contrary,” said Holmes, “out of my last fifty-three cases my name has
only appeared in four, and the police have had all the credit in forty-nine. I
don’t blame you for not knowing this, for you are young and inexperienced,
but if you wish to get on in your new duties you will work with me and not
against me.”
“I’d be very glad of a hint or two,” said the detective, changing his manner.
“I’ve certainly had no credit from the case so far.”
“What steps have you taken?”
“Tangey, the commissionnaire, has been shadowed. He left the Guards with a
good character and we can find nothing against him. His wife is a bad lot,
though. I fancy she knows more about this than appears.”
“We have set one of our women on to her. Mrs. Tangey drinks, and our
woman has been with her twice when she was well on, but she could get
nothing out of her.”
“That was all right. His pension was due. They have not shown any sign of
being in funds.”
“What explanation did she give of having answered the bell when Mr. Phelps
rang for the coffee?”
“She said that he husband was very tired and she wished to relieve him.”
“Well, certainly that would agree with his being found a little later asleep in his
chair. There is nothing against them then but the woman’s character. Did you
ask her why she hurried away that night? Her haste attracted the attention of
the police constable.”
“Did you point out to her that you and Mr. Phelps, who started at least twenty
minutes after her, got home before her?”
“Did she make it clear why, on reaching her house, she ran into the back
kitchen?”
“Because she had the money there with which to pay off the brokers.”
“She has at least an answer for everything. Did you ask her whether in leaving
she met any one or saw any one loitering about Charles Street?”
“Well, you seem to have cross-examined her pretty thoroughly. What else have
you done?”
“The clerk Gorot has been shadowed all these nine weeks, but without result.
We can show nothing against him.”
“Anything else?”
“Well, I must confess that it beats me. It was a cool hand, whoever it was, to go
and give the alarm like that.”
“Yes, it was queer thing to do. Many thanks to you for what you have told me.
If I can put the man into your hands you shall hear from me. Come along,
Watson.”
“We are now going to interview Lord Holdhurst, the cabinet minister and
future premier of England.”
We were fortunate in finding that Lord Holdhurst was still in his chambers in
Downing Street, and on Holmes sending in his card we were instantly shown
up. The statesman received us with that old-fashioned courtesy for which he is
remarkable, and seated us on the two luxuriant lounges on either side of the
fireplace. Standing on the rug between us, with his slight, tall figure, his sharp
features, thoughtful face, and curling hair prematurely tinged with gray, he
seemed to represent that not too common type, a nobleman who is in truth
noble.
“Your name is very familiar to me, Mr. Holmes,” said he, smiling. “And, of
course, I cannot pretend to be ignorant of the object of your visit. There has
only been one occurrence in these offices which could call for your attention.
In whose interest are you acting, may I ask?”
“Ah, my unfortunate nephew! You can understand that our kinship makes it
the more impossible for me to screen him in any way. I fear that the incident
must have a very prejudicial effect upon his career.”
“I had one or two questions which I wished to ask you, Lord Holdhurst.”
“Was it in this room that you gave your instructions as to the copying of the
document?”
“It was.”
“Did you ever mention to any one that it was your intention to give any one
the treaty to be copied?”
“Never.”
“Absolutely.”
“Well, since you never said so, and Mr. Phelps never said so, and nobody else
knew anything of the matter, then the thief’s presence in the room was purely
accidental. He saw his chance and he took it.”
The statesman smiled. “You take me out of my province there,” said he.
A shadow passed over the expressive face of the statesman. “Very grave results
indeed.”
“Not yet.”
“If the treaty had reached, let us say, the French or Russian Foreign Office, you
would expect to hear of it?”
“Since nearly ten weeks have elapsed, then, and nothing has been heard, it is
not unfair to suppose that for some reason the treaty has not reached them.”
“We can hardly suppose, Mr. Holmes, that the thief took the treaty in order to
frame it and hang it up.”
“If he waits a little longer he will get no price at all. The treaty will cease to be
secret in a few months.”
“An attack of brain-fever, for example?” asked the statesman, flashing a swift
glance at him.
“I did not say so,” said Holmes, imperturbably. “And now, Lord Holdhurst, we
have already taken up too much of your valuable time, and we shall wish you
good-day.”
“Every success to your investigation, be the criminal who it may,” answered the
nobleman, as he bowed us out the door.
“He’s a fine fellow,” said Holmes, as we came out into Whitehall. “But he has a
struggle to keep up his position. He is far from rich and has many calls. You
noticed, of course, that his boots had been resoled. Now, Watson, I won’t
detain you from your legitimate work any longer. I shall do nothing more to-
day, unless I have an answer to my cab advertisement. But I should be
extremely obliged to you if you would come down with me to Woking to-
morrow, by the same train which we took yesterday.”
I met him accordingly next morning and we traveled down to Woking together.
He had had no answer to his advertisement, he said, and no fresh light had
been thrown upon the case. He had, when he so willed it, the utter immobility
of countenance of a red Indian, and I could not gather from his appearance
whether he was satisfied or not with the position of the case. His conversation,
I remember, was about the Bertillon system of measurements, and he
expressed his enthusiastic admiration of the French savant.
We found our client still under the charge of his devoted nurse, but looking
considerably better than before. He rose from the sofa and greeted us without
difficulty when we entered.
“By no means.”
“God bless you for saying that!” cried Miss Harrison. “If we keep our courage
and our patience the truth must come out.”
“We have more to tell you than you have for us,” said Phelps, reseating himself
upon the couch.
“It sounds incredible, for I have not, as far as I know, an enemy in the world.
Yet from last night’s experience I can come to no other conclusion.”
“You must know that last night was the very first night that I have ever slept
without a nurse in the room. I was so much better that I thought I could
dispense with one. I had a night-light burning, however. Well, about two in the
morning I had sunk into a light sleep when I was suddenly aroused by a slight
noise. It was like the sound which a mouse makes when it is gnawing a plank,
and I lay listening to it for some time under the impression that it must come
from that cause. Then it grew louder, and suddenly there came from the
window a sharp metallic snick. I sat up in amazement. There could be no doubt
what the sounds were now. The first ones had been caused by some one
forcing an instrument through the slit between the sashes, and the second by
the catch being pressed back.
“There was a pause then for about ten minutes, as if the person were waiting to
see whether the noise had awakened me. Then I heard a gentle creaking as the
window was very slowly opened. I could stand it no longer, for my nerves are
not what they used to be. I sprang out of bed and flung open the shutters. A
man was crouching at the window. I could see little of him, for he was gone
like a flash. He was wrapped in some sort of cloak which came across the lower
part of his face. One thing only I am sure of, and that is that he had some
weapon in his hand. It looked to me like a long knife. I distinctly saw the gleam
of it as he turned to run.”
“This is most interesting,” said Holmes. “Pray what did you do then?”
“I should have followed him through the open window if I had been stronger.
As it was, I rang the bell and roused the house. It took me some little time, for
the bell rings in the kitchen and the servants all sleep upstairs. I shouted,
however, and that brought Joseph down, and he roused the others. Joseph and
the groom found marks on the bed outside the window, but the weather has
been so dry lately that they found it hopeless to follow the trail across the grass.
There’s a place, however, on the wooden fence which skirts the road which
shows signs, they tell me, as if some one had got over, and had snapped the top
of the rail in doing so. I have said nothing to the local police yet, for I thought I
had best have your opinion first.”
This tale of our client’s appeared to have an extraordinary effect upon Sherlock
Holmes. He rose from his chair and paced about the room in uncontrollable
excitement.
“Misfortunes never come single,” said Phelps, smiling, though it was evident
that his adventure had somewhat shaken him.
“You have certainly had your share,” said Holmes. “Do you think you could
walk round the house with me?”
“Oh, yes, I should like a little sunshine. Joseph will come, too.”
“I am afraid not,” said Holmes, shaking his head. “I think I must ask you to
remain sitting exactly where you are.”
The young lady resumed her seat with an air of displeasure. Her brother,
however, had joined us and we set off all four together. We passed round the
lawn to the outside of the young diplomatist’s window. There were, as he had
said, marks upon the bed, but they were hopelessly blurred and vague. Holmes
stopped over them for an instant, and then rose shrugging his shoulders.
“I don’t think any one could make much of this,” said he. “Let us go round the
house and see why this particular room was chosen by the burglar. I should
have thought those larger windows of the drawing-room and dining-room
would have had more attractions for him.”
“They are more visible from the road,” suggested Mr. Joseph Harrison.
“Ah, yes, of course. There is a door here which he might have attempted. What
is it for?”
“It is the side entrance for trades-people. Of course it is locked at night.”
“Nothing of value.”
Holmes strolled round the house with his hands in his pockets and a negligent
air which was unusual with him.
“By the way,” said he to Joseph Harrison, “you found some place, I
understand, where the fellow scaled the fence. Let us have a look at that!”
The plump young man led us to a spot where the top of one of the wooden
rails had been cracked. A small fragment of the wood was hanging down.
Holmes pulled it off and examined it critically.
“Do you think that was done last night? It looks rather old, does it not?”
“There are no marks of any one jumping down upon the other side. No, I
fancy we shall get no help here. Let us go back to the bedroom and talk the
matter over.”
Percy Phelps was walking very slowly, leaning upon the arm of his future
brother-in-law. Holmes walked swiftly across the lawn, and we were at the
open window of the bedroom long before the others came up.
“Miss Harrison,” said Holmes, speaking with the utmost intensity of manner,
“you must stay where you are all day. Let nothing prevent you from staying
where you are all day. It is of the utmost importance.”
“Certainly, if you wish it, Mr. Holmes,” said the girl in astonishment.
“When you go to bed lock the door of this room on the outside and keep the
key. Promise to do this.”
“But Percy?”
“It is for his sake. You can serve him. Quick! Promise!”
She gave a quick nod of assent just as the other two came up.
“Why do you sit moping there, Annie?” cried her brother. “Come out into the
sunshine!”
“No, thank you, Joseph. I have a slight headache and this room is deliciously
cool and soothing.”
“Well, in investigating this minor affair we must not lose sight of our main
inquiry. It would be a very great help to me if you would come up to London
with us.”
“At once?”
“Then, if my friend of the night comes to revisit me, he will find the bird
flown. We are all in your hands, Mr. Holmes, and you must tell us exactly what
you would like done. Perhaps you would prefer that Joseph came with us so as
to look after me?”
“Oh, no; my friend Watson is a medical man, you know, and he’ll look after
you. We’ll have our lunch here, if you will permit us, and then we shall all three
set off for town together.”
“There are one or two small points which I should desire to clear up before I
go,” said he. “Your absence, Mr. Phelps, will in some ways rather assist me.
Watson, when you reach London you would oblige me by driving at once to
Baker Street with our friend here, and remaining with him until I see you again.
It is fortunate that you are old school-fellows, as you must have much to talk
over. Mr. Phelps can have the spare bedroom to-night, and I will be with you in
time for breakfast, for there is a train which will take me into Waterloo at
eight.”
“We can do that to-morrow. I think that just at present I can be of more
immediate use here.”
“You might tell them at Briarbrae that I hope to be back to-morrow night,”
cried Phelps, as we began to move from the platform.
Phelps and I talked it over on our journey, but neither of us could devise a
satisfactory reason for this new development.
“I suppose he wants to find out some clue as to the burglary last night, if a
burglar it was. For myself, I don’t believe it was an ordinary thief.”
“Oh, no, it was a knife. I saw the flash of the blade quite distinctly.”
“Well, if Holmes takes the same view, that would account for his action, would
it not? Presuming that your theory is correct, if he can lay his hands upon the
man who threatened you last night he will have gone a long way towards
finding who took the naval treaty. It is absurd to suppose that you have two
enemies, one of whom robs you, while the other threatens your life.”
“I have known him for some time,” said I, “but I never knew him do anything
yet without a very good reason,” and with that our conversation drifted off on
to other topics.
But it was a weary day for me. Phelps was still weak after his long illness, and
his misfortune made him querulous and nervous. In vain I endeavored to
interest him in Afghanistan, in India, in social questions, in anything which
might take his mind out of the groove. He would always come back to his lost
treaty, wondering, guessing, speculating, as to what Holmes was doing, what
steps Lord Holdhurst was taking, what news we should have in the morning.
As the evening wore on his excitement became quite painful.
“But you know him well, Watson. He is such an inscrutable fellow that I never
quite know what to make of him. Do you think he is hopeful? Do you think he
expects to make a success of it?”
“On the contrary, I have noticed that when he is off the trail he generally says
so. It is when he is on a scent and is not quite absolutely sure yet that it is the
right one that he is most taciturn. Now, my dear fellow, we can’t help matters
by making ourselves nervous about them, so let me implore you to go to bed
and so be fresh for whatever may await us to-morrow.”
It was seven o’clock when I awoke, and I set off at once for Phelps’s room, to
find him haggard and spent after a sleepless night. His first question was
whether Holmes had arrived yet.
“He’ll be here when he promised,” said I, “and not an instant sooner or later.”
And my words were true, for shortly after eight a hansom dashed up to the
door and our friend got out of it. Standing in the window we saw that his left
hand was swathed in a bandage and that his face was very grim and pale. He
entered the house, but it was some little time before he came upstairs.
I was forced to confess that he was right. “After all,” said I, “the clue of the
matter lies probably here in town.”
“I don’t know how it is,” said he, “but I had hoped for so much from his
return. But surely his hand was not tied up like that yesterday. What can be the
matter?”
“You are not wounded, Holmes?” I asked, as my friend entered the room.
“That bandage tells of adventures,” said I. “Won’t you tell us what has
happened?”
“After breakfast, my dear Watson. Remember that I have breathed thirty miles
of Surrey air this morning. I suppose that there has been no answer from my
cabman advertisement? Well, well, we cannot expect to score every time.”
The table was all laid, and just as I was about to ring Mrs. Hudson entered with
the tea and coffee. A few minutes later she brought in three covers, and we all
drew up to the table, Holmes ravenous, I curious, and Phelps in the gloomiest
state of depression.
“Mrs. Hudson has risen to the occasion,” said Holmes, uncovering a dish of
curried chicken. “Her cuisine is a little limited, but she has as good an idea of
breakfast as a Scotch-woman. What have you here, Watson?”
“Well, then,” said Holmes, with a mischievous twinkle, “I suppose that you
have no objection to helping me?”
Phelps raised the cover, and as he did so he uttered a scream, and sat there
staring with a face as white as the plate upon which he looked. Across the
centre of it was lying a little cylinder of blue-gray paper. He caught it up,
devoured it with his eyes, and then danced madly about the room, pressing it to
his bosom and shrieking out in his delight. Then he fell back into an arm-chair
so limp and exhausted with his own emotions that we had to pour brandy
down his throat to keep him from fainting.
“There! there!” said Holmes, soothing, patting him upon the shoulder. “It was
too bad to spring it on you like this, but Watson here will tell you that I never
can resist a touch of the dramatic.”
Phelps seized his hand and kissed it. “God bless you!” he cried. “You have
saved my honor.”
“Well, my own was at stake, you know,” said Holmes. “I assure you it is just as
hateful to me to fail in a case as it can be to you to blunder over a
commission.”
Phelps thrust away the precious document into the innermost pocket of his
coat.
“I have not the heart to interrupt your breakfast any further, and yet I am dying
to know how you got it and where it was.”
Sherlock Holmes swallowed a cup of coffee, and turned his attention to the
ham and eggs. Then he rose, lit his pipe, and settled himself down into his
chair.
“I’ll tell you what I did first, and how I came to do it afterwards,” said he.
“After leaving you at the station I went for a charming walk through some
admirable Surrey scenery to a pretty little village called Ripley, where I had my
tea at an inn, and took the precaution of filling my flask and of putting a paper
of sandwiches in my pocket. There I remained until evening, when I set off for
Woking again, and found myself in the high-road outside Briarbrae just after
sunset.
“Well, I waited until the road was clear—it is never a very frequented one at
any time, I fancy—and then I clambered over the fence into the grounds.”
“Yes, but I have a peculiar taste in these matters. I chose the place where the
three fir-trees stand, and behind their screen I got over without the least chance
of any one in the house being able to see me. I crouched down among the
bushes on the other side, and crawled from one to the other—witness the
disreputable state of my trouser knees—until I had reached the clump of
rhododendrons just opposite to your bedroom window. There I squatted down
and awaited developments.
“The blind was not down in your room, and I could see Miss Harrison sitting
there reading by the table. It was quarter-past ten when she closed her book,
fastened the shutters, and retired.
“I heard her shut the door, and felt quite sure that she had turned the key in the
lock.”
“Yes; I had given Miss Harrison instructions to lock the door on the outside
and take the key with her when she went to bed. She carried out every one of
my injunctions to the letter, and certainly without her cooperation you would
not have that paper in you coat-pocket. She departed then and the lights went
out, and I was left squatting in the rhododendron-bush.
“The night was fine, but still it was a very weary vigil. Of course it has the sort
of excitement about it that the sportsman feels when he lies beside the water-
course and waits for the big game. It was very long, though—almost as long,
Watson, as when you and I waited in that deadly room when we looked into
the little problem of the Speckled Band. There was a church-clock down at
Woking which struck the quarters, and I thought more than once that it had
stopped. At last however about two in the morning, I suddenly heard the gentle
sound of a bolt being pushed back and the creaking of a key. A moment later
the servants’ door was opened, and Mr. Joseph Harrison stepped out into the
moonlight.”
“He was bare-headed, but he had a black coat thrown over his shoulder so that
he could conceal his face in an instant if there were any alarm. He walked on
tiptoe under the shadow of the wall, and when he reached the window he
worked a long-bladed knife through the sash and pushed back the catch. Then
he flung open the window, and putting his knife through the crack in the
shutters, he thrust the bar up and swung them open.
“From where I lay I had a perfect view of the inside of the room and of every
one of his movements. He lit the two candles which stood upon the
mantelpiece, and then he proceeded to turn back the corner of the carpet in the
neighborhood of the door. Presently he stopped and picked out a square piece
of board, such as is usually left to enable plumbers to get at the joints of the
gas-pipes. This one covered, as a matter of fact, the T joint which gives off the
pipe which supplies the kitchen underneath. Out of this hiding-place he drew
that little cylinder of paper, pushed down the board, rearranged the carpet,
blew out the candles, and walked straight into my arms as I stood waiting for
him outside the window.
“Well, he has rather more viciousness than I gave him credit for, has Master
Joseph. He flew at me with his knife, and I had to grasp him twice, and got a
cut over the knuckles, before I had the upper hand of him. He looked murder
out of the only eye he could see with when we had finished, but he listened to
reason and gave up the papers. Having got them I let my man go, but I wired
full particulars to Forbes this morning. If he is quick enough to catch his bird,
well and good. But if, as I shrewdly suspect, he finds the nest empty before he
gets there, why, all the better for the government. I fancy that Lord Holdhurst
for one, and Mr. Percy Phelps for another, would very much rather that the
affair never got as far as a police-court.
“My God!” gasped our client. “Do you tell me that during these long ten weeks
of agony the stolen papers were within the very room with me all the time?”
“So it was.”
Percy Phelps sank back in his chair. “My head whirls,” said he. “Your words
have dazed me.”
“The facts of the case, as far as I have worked them out, are these: this Joseph
Harrison entered the office through the Charles Street door, and knowing his
way he walked straight into your room the instant after you left it. Finding no
one there he promptly rang the bell, and at the instant that he did so his eyes
caught the paper upon the table. A glance showed him that chance had put in
his way a State document of immense value, and in an instant he had thrust it
into his pocket and was gone. A few minutes elapsed, as you remember, before
the sleepy commissionnaire drew your attention to the bell, and those were just
enough to give the thief time to make his escape.
“He made his way to Woking by the first train, and having examined his booty
and assured himself that it really was of immense value, he had concealed it in
what he thought was a very safe place, with the intention of taking it out again
in a day or two, and carrying it to the French embassy, or wherever he thought
that a long price was to be had. Then came your sudden return. He, without a
moment’s warning, was bundled out of his room, and from that time onward
there were always at least two of you there to prevent him from regaining his
treasure. The situation to him must have been a maddening one. But at last he
thought he saw his chance. He tried to steal in, but was baffled by your
wakefulness. You remember that you did not take your usual draught that
night.”
“I remember.”
“I fancy that he had taken steps to make that draught efficacious, and that he
quite relied upon your being unconscious. Of course, I understood that he
would repeat the attempt whenever it could be done with safety. Your leaving
the room gave him the chance he wanted. I kept Miss Harrison in it all day so
that he might not anticipate us. Then, having given him the idea that the coast
was clear, I kept guard as I have described. I already knew that the papers were
probably in the room, but I had no desire to rip up all the planking and skirting
in search of them. I let him take them, therefore, from the hiding-place, and so
saved myself an infinity of trouble. Is there any other point which I can make
clear?”
“Why did he try the window on the first occasion,” I asked, “when he might
have entered by the door?”
“In reaching the door he would have to pass seven bedrooms. On the other
hand, he could get out on to the lawn with ease. Anything else?”
“You do not think,” asked Phelps, “that he had any murderous intention? The
knife was only meant as a tool.”
“It may be so,” answered Holmes, shrugging his shoulders. “I can only say for
certain that Mr. Joseph Harrison is a gentleman to whose mercy I should be
extremely unwilling to trust.”
Adventure XI. The Final Problem
It is with a heavy heart that I take up my pen to write these the last words in
which I shall ever record the singular gifts by which my friend Mr. Sherlock
Holmes was distinguished. In an incoherent and, as I deeply feel, an entirely
inadequate fashion, I have endeavored to give some account of my strange
experiences in his company from the chance which first brought us together at
the period of the “Study in Scarlet,” up to the time of his interference in the
matter of the “Naval Treaty”—an interference which had the unquestionable
effect of preventing a serious international complication. It was my intention to
have stopped there, and to have said nothing of that event which has created a
void in my life which the lapse of two years has done little to fill. My hand has
been forced, however, by the recent letters in which Colonel James Moriarty
defends the memory of his brother, and I have no choice but to lay the facts
before the public exactly as they occurred. I alone know the absolute truth of
the matter, and I am satisfied that the time has come when no good purpose is
to be served by its suppression. As far as I know, there have been only three
accounts in the public press: that in the Journal de Geneve on May 6th, 1891,
the Reuter’s despatch in the English papers on May 7th, and finally the recent
letter to which I have alluded. Of these the first and second were extremely
condensed, while the last is, as I shall now show, an absolute perversion of the
facts. It lies with me to tell for the first time what really took place between
Professor Moriarty and Mr. Sherlock Holmes.
The only light in the room came from the lamp upon the table at which I had
been reading. Holmes edged his way round the wall and flinging the shutters
together, he bolted them securely.
“Well, I am.”
“Of what?”
“Of air-guns.”
“I must apologize for calling so late,” said he, “and I must further beg you to
be so unconventional as to allow me to leave your house presently by
scrambling over your back garden wall.”
He held out his hand, and I saw in the light of the lamp that two of his
knuckles were burst and bleeding.
“It is not an airy nothing, you see,” said he, smiling. “On the contrary, it is solid
enough for a man to break his hand over. Is Mrs. Watson in?”
“Quite.”
“Then it makes it the easier for me to propose that you should come away with
me for a week to the Continent.”
“Where?”
There was something very strange in all this. It was not Holmes’s nature to take
an aimless holiday, and something about his pale, worn face told me that his
nerves were at their highest tension. He saw the question in my eyes, and,
putting his finger-tips together and his elbows upon his knees, he explained the
situation.
“Never.”
“Aye, there’s the genius and the wonder of the thing!” he cried. “The man
pervades London, and no one has heard of him. That’s what puts him on a
pinnacle in the records of crime. I tell you, Watson, in all seriousness, that if I
could beat that man, if I could free society of him, I should feel that my own
career had reached its summit, and I should be prepared to turn to some more
placid line in life. Between ourselves, the recent cases in which I have been of
assistance to the royal family of Scandinavia, and to the French republic, have
left me in such a position that I could continue to live in the quiet fashion
which is most congenial to me, and to concentrate my attention upon my
chemical researches. But I could not rest, Watson, I could not sit quiet in my
chair, if I thought that such a man as Professor Moriarty were walking the
streets of London unchallenged.”
“His career has been an extraordinary one. He is a man of good birth and
excellent education, endowed by nature with a phenomenal mathematical
faculty. At the age of twenty-one he wrote a treatise upon the Binomial
Theorem, which has had a European vogue. On the strength of it he won the
Mathematical Chair at one of our smaller universities, and had, to all
appearances, a most brilliant career before him. But the man had hereditary
tendencies of the most diabolical kind. A criminal strain ran in his blood,
which, instead of being modified, was increased and rendered infinitely more
dangerous by his extraordinary mental powers. Dark rumors gathered round
him in the university town, and eventually he was compelled to resign his chair
and to come down to London, where he set up as an army coach. So much is
known to the world, but what I am telling you now is what I have myself
discovered.
“As you are aware, Watson, there is no one who knows the higher criminal
world of London so well as I do. For years past I have continually been
conscious of some power behind the malefactor, some deep organizing power
which forever stands in the way of the law, and throws its shield over the
wrong-doer. Again and again in cases of the most varying sorts—forgery cases,
robberies, murders—I have felt the presence of this force, and I have deduced
its action in many of those undiscovered crimes in which I have not been
personally consulted. For years I have endeavored to break through the veil
which shrouded it, and at last the time came when I seized my thread and
followed it, until it led me, after a thousand cunning windings, to ex-Professor
Moriarty of mathematical celebrity.
“He is the Napoleon of crime, Watson. He is the organizer of half that is evil
and of nearly all that is undetected in this great city. He is a genius, a
philosopher, an abstract thinker. He has a brain of the first order. He sits
motionless, like a spider in the center of its web, but that web has a thousand
radiations, and he knows well every quiver of each of them. He does little
himself. He only plans. But his agents are numerous and splendidly organized.
Is there a crime to be done, a paper to be abstracted, we will say, a house to be
rifled, a man to be removed—the word is passed to the Professor, the matter is
organized and carried out. The agent may be caught. In that case money is
found for his bail or his defence. But the central power which uses the agent is
never caught—never so much as suspected. This was the organization which I
deduced, Watson, and which I devoted my whole energy to exposing and
breaking up.
“But the Professor was fenced round with safeguards so cunningly devised
that, do what I would, it seemed impossible to get evidence which would
convict in a court of law. You know my powers, my dear Watson, and yet at
the end of three months I was forced to confess that I had at last met an
antagonist who was my intellectual equal. My horror at his crimes was lost in
my admiration at his skill. But at last he made a trip—only a little, little trip—
but it was more than he could afford when I was so close upon him. I had my
chance, and, starting from that point, I have woven my net round him until
now it is all ready to close. In three days—that is to say, on Monday next—
matters will be ripe, and the Professor, with all the principal members of his
gang, will be in the hands of the police. Then will come the greatest criminal
trial of the century, the clearing up of over forty mysteries, and the rope for all
of them; but if we move at all prematurely, you understand, they may slip out
of our hands even at the last moment.
“Now, if I could have done this without the knowledge of Professor Moriarty,
all would have been well. But he was too wily for that. He saw every step which
I took to draw my toils round him. Again and again he strove to break away,
but I as often headed him off. I tell you, my friend, that if a detailed account of
that silent contest could be written, it would take its place as the most brilliant
bit of thrust-and-parry work in the history of detection. Never have I risen to
such a height, and never have I been so hard pressed by an opponent. He cut
deep, and yet I just undercut him. This morning the last steps were taken, and
three days only were wanted to complete the business. I was sitting in my room
thinking the matter over, when the door opened and Professor Moriarty stood
before me.
“My nerves are fairly proof, Watson, but I must confess to a start when I saw
the very man who had been so much in my thoughts standing there on my
threshhold. His appearance was quite familiar to me. He is extremely tall and
thin, his forehead domes out in a white curve, and his two eyes are deeply
sunken in his head. He is clean-shaven, pale, and ascetic-looking, retaining
something of the professor in his features. His shoulders are rounded from
much study, and his face protrudes forward, and is forever slowly oscillating
from side to side in a curiously reptilian fashion. He peered at me with great
curiosity in his puckered eyes.
“‘You have less frontal development than I should have expected,’ said he, at
last. ‘It is a dangerous habit to finger loaded firearms in the pocket of one’s
dressing-gown.’
“The fact is that upon his entrance I had instantly recognized the extreme
personal danger in which I lay. The only conceivable escape for him lay in
silencing my tongue. In an instant I had slipped the revolver from the drawer
into my pocket, and was covering him through the cloth. At his remark I drew
the weapon out and laid it cocked upon the table. He still smiled and blinked,
but there was something about his eyes which made me feel very glad that I
had it there.
“‘All that I have to say has already crossed your mind,’ said he.
“‘Absolutely.’
“He clapped his hand into his pocket, and I raised the pistol from the table.
But he merely drew out a memorandum-book in which he had scribbled some
dates.
“‘You crossed my path on the 4th of January,’ said he. ‘On the 23d you
incommoded me; by the middle of February I was seriously inconvenienced by
you; at the end of March I was absolutely hampered in my plans; and now, at
the close of April, I find myself placed in such a position through your
continual persecution that I am in positive danger of losing my liberty. The
situation is becoming an impossible one.’
“‘You must drop it, Mr. Holmes,’ said he, swaying his face about. ‘You really
must, you know.’
“‘Tut, tut,’ said he. ‘I am quite sure that a man of your intelligence will see that
there can be but one outcome to this affair. It is necessary that you should
withdraw. You have worked things in such a fashion that we have only one
resource left. It has been an intellectual treat to me to see the way in which you
have grappled with this affair, and I say, unaffectedly, that it would be a grief to
me to be forced to take any extreme measure. You smile, sir, but I assure you
that it really would.’
“He rose also and looked at me in silence, shaking his head sadly.
“‘Well, well,’ said he, at last. ‘It seems a pity, but I have done what I could. I
know every move of your game. You can do nothing before Monday. It has
been a duel between you and me, Mr. Holmes. You hope to place me in the
dock. I tell you that I will never stand in the dock. You hope to beat me. I tell
you that you will never beat me. If you are clever enough to bring destruction
upon me, rest assured that I shall do as much to you.’
“‘You have paid me several compliments, Mr. Moriarty,’ said I. ‘Let me pay you
one in return when I say that if I were assured of the former eventuality I
would, in the interests of the public, cheerfully accept the latter.’
“‘I can promise you the one, but not the other,’ he snarled, and so turned his
rounded back upon me, and went peering and blinking out of the room.
“That was my singular interview with Professor Moriarty. I confess that it left
an unpleasant effect upon my mind. His soft, precise fashion of speech leaves a
conviction of sincerity which a mere bully could not produce. Of course, you
will say: ‘Why not take police precautions against him?’ the reason is that I am
well convinced that it is from his agents the blow will fall. I have the best
proofs that it would be so.”
“My dear Watson, Professor Moriarty is not a man who lets the grass grow
under his feet. I went out about mid-day to transact some business in Oxford
Street. As I passed the corner which leads from Bentinck Street on to the
Welbeck Street crossing a two-horse van furiously driven whizzed round and
was on me like a flash. I sprang for the foot-path and saved myself by the
fraction of a second. The van dashed round by Marylebone Lane and was gone
in an instant. I kept to the pavement after that, Watson, but as I walked down
Vere Street a brick came down from the roof of one of the houses, and was
shattered to fragments at my feet. I called the police and had the place
examined. There were slates and bricks piled up on the roof preparatory to
some repairs, and they would have me believe that the wind had toppled over
one of these. Of course I knew better, but I could prove nothing. I took a cab
after that and reached my brother’s rooms in Pall Mall, where I spent the day.
Now I have come round to you, and on my way I was attacked by a rough with
a bludgeon. I knocked him down, and the police have him in custody; but I can
tell you with the most absolute confidence that no possible connection will
ever be traced between the gentleman upon whose front teeth I have barked
my knuckles and the retiring mathematical coach, who is, I dare say, working
out problems upon a black-board ten miles away. You will not wonder,
Watson, that my first act on entering your rooms was to close your shutters,
and that I have been compelled to ask your permission to leave the house by
some less conspicuous exit than the front door.”
I had often admired my friend’s courage, but never more than now, as he sat
quietly checking off a series of incidents which must have combined to make
up a day of horror.
“No, my friend, you might find me a dangerous guest. I have my plans laid, and
all will be well. Matters have gone so far now that they can move without my
help as far as the arrest goes, though my presence is necessary for a conviction.
It is obvious, therefore, that I cannot do better than get away for the few days
which remain before the police are at liberty to act. It would be a great pleasure
to me, therefore, if you could come on to the Continent with me.”
“If necessary.”
“Oh yes, it is most necessary. Then these are your instructions, and I beg, my
dear Watson, that you will obey them to the letter, for you are now playing a
double-handed game with me against the cleverest rogue and the most
powerful syndicate of criminals in Europe. Now listen! You will dispatch
whatever luggage you intend to take by a trusty messenger unaddressed to
Victoria to-night. In the morning you will send for a hansom, desiring your
man to take neither the first nor the second which may present itself. Into this
hansom you will jump, and you will drive to the Strand end of the Lowther
Arcade, handing the address to the cabman upon a slip of paper, with a request
that he will not throw it away. Have your fare ready, and the instant that your
cab stops, dash through the Arcade, timing yourself to reach the other side at a
quarter-past nine. You will find a small brougham waiting close to the curb,
driven by a fellow with a heavy black cloak tipped at the collar with red. Into
this you will step, and you will reach Victoria in time for the Continental
express.”
“At the station. The second first-class carriage from the front will be reserved
for us.”
“Yes.”
It was in vain that I asked Holmes to remain for the evening. It was evident to
me that he thought he might bring trouble to the roof he was under, and that
that was the motive which impelled him to go. With a few hurried words as to
our plans for the morrow he rose and came out with me into the garden,
clambering over the wall which leads into Mortimer Street, and immediately
whistling for a hansom, in which I heard him drive away.
So far all had gone admirably. My luggage was waiting for me, and I had no
difficulty in finding the carriage which Holmes had indicated, the less so as it
was the only one in the train which was marked “Engaged.” My only source of
anxiety now was the non-appearance of Holmes. The station clock marked only
seven minutes from the time when we were due to start. In vain I searched
among the groups of travellers and leave-takers for the lithe figure of my
friend. There was no sign of him. I spent a few minutes in assisting a venerable
Italian priest, who was endeavoring to make a porter understand, in his broken
English, that his luggage was to be booked through to Paris. Then, having
taken another look round, I returned to my carriage, where I found that the
porter, in spite of the ticket, had given me my decrepit Italian friend as a
traveling companion. It was useless for me to explain to him that his presence
was an intrusion, for my Italian was even more limited than his English, so I
shrugged my shoulders resignedly, and continued to look out anxiously for my
friend. A chill of fear had come over me, as I thought that his absence might
mean that some blow had fallen during the night. Already the doors had all
been shut and the whistle blown, when—
“My dear Watson,” said a voice, “you have not even condescended to say
good-morning.”
The train had already begun to move as Holmes spoke. Glancing back, I saw a
tall man pushing his way furiously through the crowd, and waving his hand as if
he desired to have the train stopped. It was too late, however, for we were
rapidly gathering momentum, and an instant later had shot clear of the station.
“With all our precautions, you see that we have cut it rather fine,” said Holmes,
laughing. He rose, and throwing off the black cassock and hat which had
formed his disguise, he packed them away in a hand-bag.
“No.”
“They set fire to our rooms last night. No great harm was done.”
“They must have lost my track completely after their bludgeon-man was
arrested. Otherwise they could not have imagined that I had returned to my
rooms. They have evidently taken the precaution of watching you, however,
and that is what has brought Moriarty to Victoria. You could not have made
any slip in coming?”
“No.”
“As this is an express, and as the boat runs in connection with it, I should think
we have shaken him off very effectively.”
“My dear Watson, you evidently did not realize my meaning when I said that
this man may be taken as being quite on the same intellectual plane as myself.
You do not imagine that if I were the pursuer I should allow myself to be
baffled by so slight an obstacle. Why, then, should you think so meanly of
him?”
“By no means. This train stops at Canterbury; and there is always at least a
quarter of an hour’s delay at the boat. He will catch us there.”
“One would think that we were the criminals. Let us have him arrested on his
arrival.”
“It would be to ruin the work of three months. We should get the big fish, but
the smaller would dart right and left out of the net. On Monday we should
have them all. No, an arrest is inadmissible.”
“What then?”
“And then?”
I was still looking rather ruefully after the rapidly disappearing luggage-van
which contained my wardrobe, when Holmes pulled my sleeve and pointed up
the line.
Far away, from among the Kentish woods there rose a thin spray of smoke. A
minute later a carriage and engine could be seen flying along the open curve
which leads to the station. We had hardly time to take our place behind a pile
of luggage when it passed with a rattle and a roar, beating a blast of hot air into
our faces.
“There he goes,” said Holmes, as we watched the carriage swing and rock over
the points. “There are limits, you see, to our friend’s intelligence. It would have
been a coup-de-maitre had he deduced what I would deduce and acted
accordingly.”
“There cannot be the least doubt that he would have made a murderous attack
upon me. It is, however, a game at which two may play. The question now is
whether we should take a premature lunch here, or run our chance of starving
before we reach the buffet at Newhaven.”
We made our way to Brussels that night and spent two days there, moving on
upon the third day as far as Strasburg. On the Monday morning Holmes had
telegraphed to the London police, and in the evening we found a reply waiting
for us at our hotel. Holmes tore it open, and then with a bitter curse hurled it
into the grate.
“Moriarty?”
“They have secured the whole gang with the exception of him. He has given
them the slip. Of course, when I had left the country there was no one to cope
with him. But I did think that I had put the game in their hands. I think that
you had better return to England, Watson.”
“Why?”
“Because you will find me a dangerous companion now. This man’s occupation
is gone. He is lost if he returns to London. If I read his character right he will
devote his whole energies to revenging himself upon me. He said as much in
our short interview, and I fancy that he meant it. I should certainly recommend
you to return to your practice.”
It was hardly an appeal to be successful with one who was an old campaigner
as well as an old friend. We sat in the Strasburg salle-à-manger arguing the
question for half an hour, but the same night we had resumed our journey and
were well on our way to Geneva.
For a charming week we wandered up the Valley of the Rhone, and then,
branching off at Leuk, we made our way over the Gemmi Pass, still deep in
snow, and so, by way of Interlaken, to Meiringen. It was a lovely trip, the dainty
green of the spring below, the virgin white of the winter above; but it was clear
to me that never for one instant did Holmes forget the shadow which lay
across him. In the homely Alpine villages or in the lonely mountain passes, I
could tell by his quick glancing eyes and his sharp scrutiny of every face that
passed us, that he was well convinced that, walk where we would, we could not
walk ourselves clear of the danger which was dogging our footsteps.
Once, I remember, as we passed over the Gemmi, and walked along the border
of the melancholy Daubensee, a large rock which had been dislodged from the
ridge upon our right clattered down and roared into the lake behind us. In an
instant Holmes had raced up on to the ridge, and, standing upon a lofty
pinnacle, craned his neck in every direction. It was in vain that our guide
assured him that a fall of stones was a common chance in the spring-time at
that spot. He said nothing, but he smiled at me with the air of a man who sees
the fulfillment of that which he had expected.
And yet for all his watchfulness he was never depressed. On the contrary, I can
never recollect having seen him in such exuberant spirits. Again and again he
recurred to the fact that if he could be assured that society was freed from
Professor Moriarty he would cheerfully bring his own career to a conclusion.
“I think that I may go so far as to say, Watson, that I have not lived wholly in
vain,” he remarked. “If my record were closed to-night I could still survey it
with equanimity. The air of London is the sweeter for my presence. In over a
thousand cases I am not aware that I have ever used my powers upon the
wrong side. Of late I have been tempted to look into the problems furnished
by nature rather than those more superficial ones for which our artificial state
of society is responsible. Your memoirs will draw to an end, Watson, upon the
day that I crown my career by the capture or extinction of the most dangerous
and capable criminal in Europe.”
I shall be brief, and yet exact, in the little which remains for me to tell. It is not
a subject on which I would willingly dwell, and yet I am conscious that a duty
devolves upon me to omit no detail.
It was on the 3d of May that we reached the little village of Meiringen, where
we put up at the Englischer Hof, then kept by Peter Steiler the elder. Our
landlord was an intelligent man, and spoke excellent English, having served for
three years as waiter at the Grosvenor Hotel in London. At his advice, on the
afternoon of the 4th we set off together, with the intention of crossing the hills
and spending the night at the hamlet of Rosenlaui. We had strict injunctions,
however, on no account to pass the falls of Reichenbach, which are about half-
way up the hill, without making a small detour to see them.
It is indeed, a fearful place. The torrent, swollen by the melting snow, plunges
into a tremendous abyss, from which the spray rolls up like the smoke from a
burning house. The shaft into which the river hurls itself is an immense chasm,
lined by glistening coal-black rock, and narrowing into a creaming, boiling pit
of incalculable depth, which brims over and shoots the stream onward over its
jagged lip. The long sweep of green water roaring forever down, and the thick
flickering curtain of spray hissing forever upward, turn a man giddy with their
constant whirl and clamor. We stood near the edge peering down at the gleam
of the breaking water far below us against the black rocks, and listening to the
half-human shout which came booming up with the spray out of the abyss.
The path has been cut half-way round the fall to afford a complete view, but it
ends abruptly, and the traveler has to return as he came. We had turned to do
so, when we saw a Swiss lad come running along it with a letter in his hand. It
bore the mark of the hotel which we had just left, and was addressed to me by
the landlord. It appeared that within a very few minutes of our leaving, an
English lady had arrived who was in the last stage of consumption. She had
wintered at Davos Platz, and was journeying now to join her friends at
Lucerne, when a sudden hemorrhage had overtaken her. It was thought that
she could hardly live a few hours, but it would be a great consolation to her to
see an English doctor, and, if I would only return, etc. The good Steiler assured
me in a postscript that he would himself look upon my compliance as a very
great favor, since the lady absolutely refused to see a Swiss physician, and he
could not but feel that he was incurring a great responsibility.
The appeal was one which could not be ignored. It was impossible to refuse
the request of a fellow-countrywoman dying in a strange land. Yet I had my
scruples about leaving Holmes. It was finally agreed, however, that he should
retain the young Swiss messenger with him as guide and companion while I
returned to Meiringen. My friend would stay some little time at the fall, he said,
and would then walk slowly over the hill to Rosenlaui, where I was to rejoin
him in the evening. As I turned away I saw Holmes, with his back against a
rock and his arms folded, gazing down at the rush of the waters. It was the last
that I was ever destined to see of him in this world.
When I was near the bottom of the descent I looked back. It was impossible,
from that position, to see the fall, but I could see the curving path which winds
over the shoulder of the hill and leads to it. Along this a man was, I remember,
walking very rapidly.
I could see his black figure clearly outlined against the green behind him. I
noted him, and the energy with which he walked but he passed from my mind
again as I hurried on upon my errand.
It may have been a little over an hour before I reached Meiringen. Old Steiler
was standing at the porch of his hotel.
A look of surprise passed over his face, and at the first quiver of his eyebrows
my heart turned to lead in my breast.
“You did not write this?” I said, pulling the letter from my pocket. “There is no
sick Englishwoman in the hotel?”
“Certainly not!” he cried. “But it has the hotel mark upon it! Ha, it must have
been written by that tall Englishman who came in after you had gone. He
said—”
But I waited for none of the landlord’s explanations. In a tingle of fear I was
already running down the village street, and making for the path which I had so
lately descended. It had taken me an hour to come down. For all my efforts
two more had passed before I found myself at the fall of Reichenbach once
more. There was Holmes’s Alpine-stock still leaning against the rock by which
I had left him. But there was no sign of him, and it was in vain that I shouted.
My only answer was my own voice reverberating in a rolling echo from the
cliffs around me.
It was the sight of that Alpine-stock which turned me cold and sick. He had
not gone to Rosenlaui, then. He had remained on that three-foot path, with
sheer wall on one side and sheer drop on the other, until his enemy had
overtaken him. The young Swiss had gone too. He had probably been in the
pay of Moriarty, and had left the two men together. And then what had
happened? Who was to tell us what had happened then?
I stood for a minute or two to collect myself, for I was dazed with the horror
of the thing. Then I began to think of Holmes’s own methods and to try to
practise them in reading this tragedy. It was, alas, only too easy to do. During
our conversation we had not gone to the end of the path, and the Alpine-stock
marked the place where we had stood. The blackish soil is kept forever soft by
the incessant drift of spray, and a bird would leave its tread upon it. Two lines
of footmarks were clearly marked along the farther end of the path, both
leading away from me. There were none returning. A few yards from the end
the soil was all ploughed up into a patch of mud, and the branches and ferns
which fringed the chasm were torn and bedraggled. I lay upon my face and
peered over with the spray spouting up all around me. It had darkened since I
left, and now I could only see here and there the glistening of moisture upon
the black walls, and far away down at the end of the shaft the gleam of the
broken water. I shouted; but only the same half-human cry of the fall was
borne back to my ears.
But it was destined that I should after all have a last word of greeting from my
friend and comrade. I have said that his Alpine-stock had been left leaning
against a rock which jutted on to the path. From the top of this bowlder the
gleam of something bright caught my eye, and, raising my hand, I found that it
came from the silver cigarette-case which he used to carry. As I took it up a
small square of paper upon which it had lain fluttered down on to the ground.
Unfolding it, I found that it consisted of three pages torn from his note-book
and addressed to me. It was characteristic of the man that the direction was a
precise, and the writing as firm and clear, as though it had been written in his
study.
My dear Watson [it said], I write these few lines through the courtesy of Mr.
Moriarty, who awaits my convenience for the final discussion of those
questions which lie between us. He has been giving me a sketch of the methods
by which he avoided the English police and kept himself informed of our
movements. They certainly confirm the very high opinion which I had formed
of his abilities. I am pleased to think that I shall be able to free society from any
further effects of his presence, though I fear that it is at a cost which will give
pain to my friends, and especially, my dear Watson, to you. I have already
explained to you, however, that my career had in any case reached its crisis, and
that no possible conclusion to it could be more congenial to me than this.
Indeed, if I may make a full confession to you, I was quite convinced that the
letter from Meiringen was a hoax, and I allowed you to depart on that errand
under the persuasion that some development of this sort would follow. Tell
Inspector Patterson that the papers which he needs to convict the gang are in
pigeonhole M., done up in a blue envelope and inscribed “Moriarty.” I made
every disposition of my property before leaving England, and handed it to my
brother Mycroft. Pray give my greetings to Mrs. Watson, and believe me to be,
my dear fellow,
Sherlock Holmes
A few words may suffice to tell the little that remains. An examination by
experts leaves little doubt that a personal contest between the two men ended,
as it could hardly fail to end in such a situation, in their reeling over, locked in
each other’s arms. Any attempt at recovering the bodies was absolutely
hopeless, and there, deep down in that dreadful caldron of swirling water and
seething foam, will lie for all time the most dangerous criminal and the
foremost champion of the law of their generation. The Swiss youth was never
found again, and there can be no doubt that he was one of the numerous
agents whom Moriarty kept in this employ. As to the gang, it will be within the
memory of the public how completely the evidence which Holmes had
accumulated exposed their organization, and how heavily the hand of the dead
man weighed upon them. Of their terrible chief few details came out during the
proceedings, and if I have now been compelled to make a clear statement of his
career it is due to those injudicious champions who have endeavored to clear
his memory by attacks upon him whom I shall ever regard as the best and the
wisest man whom I have ever known.
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
Language: English
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
redistribution.
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
States.
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
copied or distributed:
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License. You must require such a user to return or
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
1.F.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’ WITH NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING
BUT NOT LIMITED TO
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY
PURPOSE.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works.
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
http://www.gutenberg.org